Id | Vlad | Saved | Scrape Time | Status | Scrape Result | Original Ad | Adarchiveid | Creative Links | Title | Body | Cta Type | Link Url | Pageid | Page Name | Page Profile Uri | Page Like Count | Collationcount | Collationid | Currency | Enddate | Entitytype | Fevinfo | Gatedtype | Hasuserreported | Hiddensafetydata | Hidedatastatus | Impressionstext | Impressionsindex | Isaaaeligible | Isactive | Isprofilepage | Cta Text | Pageinfo | Pageisdeleted | Pagename | Reachestimate | Reportcount | Ad Creative | Byline | Caption | Dynamic Versions | Effective Authorization Category | Display Format | Link Description | Link Url | Page Welcome Message | Creation Time | Page Profile Picture Url | Page Entity Type | Page Is Profile Page | Instagram Actor Name | Instagram Profile Pic Url | Instagram Url | Instagram Handle | Is Reshared | Version | Branded Content | Current Page Name | Disclaimer Label | Page Is Deleted | Root Reshared Post | Additional Info | Ec Certificates | Country Iso Code | Instagram Branded Content | Spend | Startdate | Statemediarunlabel | Actions |
---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|---|
2,312,529 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
No | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 | ๐LIMITED TIME OFFER๐ | ๐โโ๏ธ๐ผ๐ฉ๐ฉ๐๐ฃ๐ฉ๐๐ค๐ฃ ๐๐ฉ. ๐ ๐ช๐ก๐๐๐ฉ & ๐๐ช๐ง๐ง๐ค๐ช๐ฃ๐๐๐ฃ๐ ๐ผ๐ง๐๐๐จ! ๐ช Want to shed those pounds without stress and frustration? Look no further than ๐๐ป๐๐ฝ๐ถ๐ฟ๐ฒ ๐ ๐ฒ๐ฑ๐ถ๐ฐ๐ฎ๐น! Our science-backed program helps make easy, sustainable changes to habits, to achieve results! ๐ ๐ซ No impossible workout plans! ๐ซ No restrictive diets! ๐ Just easy, personalized support that works with lifestyle! ๐ For a limited time, we're offering a ๐๐ฟ๐ฒ๐ฒ ๐ฆ๐๐ ๐๐๐๐จ๐ง๐๐๐ ๐๐ผ๐ป๐๐๐น๐๐ฎ๐๐ถ๐ผ๐ป + $๐ญ๐ฑ๐ฌ ๐๐ถ๐ณ๐ ๐ฉ๐ผ๐๐ฐ๐ต๐ฒ๐ฟ good towards a ๐ฆ๐๐ ๐๐๐๐จ๐ง๐๐๐ treatment plans! Our team of experts will work to create a personalized plan that addresses specific needs and goals, whether clients are looking to slim down or improve overall health! ๐ Click "Learn More" below to request a ๐๐ฟ๐ฒ๐ฒ ๐ฆ๐๐ ๐๐๐๐จ๐ง๐๐๐ ๐๐ผ๐ป๐๐๐น๐๐ฎ๐๐ถ๐ผ๐ป + $๐ญ๐ฑ๐ฌ ๐๐ถ๐ณ๐ ๐ฉ๐ผ๐๐ฐ๐ต๐ฒ๐ฟ today! Don't wait โ start with ๐๐ป๐๐ฝ๐ถ๐ฟ๐ฒ ๐ ๐ฒ๐ฑ๐ถ๐ฐ๐ฎ๐น today! ๐ | LEARN_MORE | https://www.medicalspapromos.com/inspire-medical-1 | Inspire Medical - Mt. Juliet | https://www.facebook.com/61566882377575/ | 4 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | www.medicalspapromos.com | VIDEO | https://www.medicalspapromos.com/inspire-medical-14-optin | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/465071509_415794474902414_1991551370841796089_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=Z-L1i31a_-UQ7kNvgFVC462&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AzQIGBqBqGaAdlxnpup3QFn&oh=00_AYAAJgIOaZJaPfHwbLgLEAekIa401mtKQti3H-3_lIWrIQ&oe=672FDE6A | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Inspire Medical - Mt. Juliet | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,532 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312529}' |
No | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 |
|
๐LIMITED TIME OFFER๐ | ๐โโ๏ธ๐ผ๐ฉ๐ฉ๐๐ฃ๐ฉ๐๐ค๐ฃ ๐๐ฉ. ๐ ๐ช๐ก๐๐๐ฉ & ๐๐ช๐ง๐ง๐ค๐ช๐ฃ๐๐๐ฃ๐ ๐ผ๐ง๐๐๐จ! ๐ช Want to shed those pounds without stress and frustration? Look no further than ๐๐ป๐๐ฝ๐ถ๐ฟ๐ฒ ๐ ๐ฒ๐ฑ๐ถ๐ฐ๐ฎ๐น! Our science-backed program helps make easy, sustainable changes to habits, to achieve results! ๐ ๐ซ No impossible workout plans! ๐ซ No restrictive diets! ๐ Just easy, personalized support that works with lifestyle! ๐ For a limited time, we're offering a ๐๐ฟ๐ฒ๐ฒ ๐ฆ๐๐ ๐๐๐๐จ๐ง๐๐๐ ๐๐ผ๐ป๐๐๐น๐๐ฎ๐๐ถ๐ผ๐ป + $๐ญ๐ฑ๐ฌ ๐๐ถ๐ณ๐ ๐ฉ๐ผ๐๐ฐ๐ต๐ฒ๐ฟ good towards a ๐ฆ๐๐ ๐๐๐๐จ๐ง๐๐๐ treatment plans! Our team of experts will work to create a personalized plan that addresses specific needs and goals, whether clients are looking to slim down or improve overall health! ๐ Click "Learn More" below to request a ๐๐ฟ๐ฒ๐ฒ ๐ฆ๐๐ ๐๐๐๐จ๐ง๐๐๐ ๐๐ผ๐ป๐๐๐น๐๐ฎ๐๐ถ๐ผ๐ป + $๐ญ๐ฑ๐ฌ ๐๐ถ๐ณ๐ ๐ฉ๐ผ๐๐ฐ๐ต๐ฒ๐ฟ today! Don't wait โ start with ๐๐ป๐๐ฝ๐ถ๐ฟ๐ฒ ๐ ๐ฒ๐ฑ๐ถ๐ฐ๐ฎ๐น today! ๐ | LEARN_MORE | https://www.medicalspapromos.com/inspire-medical-1 | Inspire Medical - Mt. Juliet | https://www.facebook.com/61566882377575/ | 4 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | medicalspapromos.com | IMAGE | Free Medical Aesthetics Consultation | https://www.medicalspapromos.com/inspire-medical-14-optin | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/465021005_572388952029413_5442152631383634175_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=104&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=syR4s8Y0ehQQ7kNvgGASe-_&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AzQIGBqBqGaAdlxnpup3QFn&oh=00_AYC1kvxK0MVMZQQLmiRuKBeNdykX7HaIsQ5Sbad1LmO63g&oe=672FF75B | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Inspire Medical - Mt. Juliet | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,535 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312529}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 |
|
๐LIMITED TIME OFFER๐ | ๐โโ๏ธ๐ผ๐ฉ๐ฉ๐๐ฃ๐ฉ๐๐ค๐ฃ ๐๐ฉ. ๐ ๐ช๐ก๐๐๐ฉ & ๐๐ช๐ง๐ง๐ค๐ช๐ฃ๐๐๐ฃ๐ ๐ผ๐ง๐๐๐จ! ๐ช Want to shed those pounds without stress and frustration? Look no further than ๐๐ป๐๐ฝ๐ถ๐ฟ๐ฒ ๐ ๐ฒ๐ฑ๐ถ๐ฐ๐ฎ๐น! Our science-backed program helps make easy, sustainable changes to habits, to achieve results! ๐ ๐ซ No impossible workout plans! ๐ซ No restrictive diets! ๐ Just easy, personalized support that works with lifestyle! ๐ For a limited time, we're offering a ๐๐ฟ๐ฒ๐ฒ ๐ฆ๐๐ ๐๐๐๐จ๐ง๐๐๐ ๐๐ผ๐ป๐๐๐น๐๐ฎ๐๐ถ๐ผ๐ป + $๐ญ๐ฑ๐ฌ ๐๐ถ๐ณ๐ ๐ฉ๐ผ๐๐ฐ๐ต๐ฒ๐ฟ good towards a ๐ฆ๐๐ ๐๐๐๐จ๐ง๐๐๐ treatment plans! Our team of experts will work to create a personalized plan that addresses specific needs and goals, whether clients are looking to slim down or improve overall health! ๐ Click "Learn More" below to request a ๐๐ฟ๐ฒ๐ฒ ๐ฆ๐๐ ๐๐๐๐จ๐ง๐๐๐ ๐๐ผ๐ป๐๐๐น๐๐ฎ๐๐ถ๐ผ๐ป + $๐ญ๐ฑ๐ฌ ๐๐ถ๐ณ๐ ๐ฉ๐ผ๐๐ฐ๐ต๐ฒ๐ฟ today! Don't wait โ start with ๐๐ป๐๐ฝ๐ถ๐ฟ๐ฒ ๐ ๐ฒ๐ฑ๐ถ๐ฐ๐ฎ๐น today! ๐ | LEARN_MORE | https://www.medicalspapromos.com/inspire-medical-1 | Inspire Medical - Mt. Juliet | https://www.facebook.com/61566882377575/ | 4 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | medicalspapromos.com | IMAGE | Free Medical Aesthetics Consultation | https://www.medicalspapromos.com/inspire-medical-14-optin | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/465026115_1079708870413642_9131361291350668011_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=111&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=61PIkb1B3DsQ7kNvgG9-moT&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AzQIGBqBqGaAdlxnpup3QFn&oh=00_AYCpfQ1knLq2A5RtX3wayrJjvV00jUtQ8I9ezmlilIJ6tA&oe=673004C4 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Inspire Medical - Mt. Juliet | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,536 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312531}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 |
|
GIVE ME MY GIFT VOUCHER๐ | ๐โโ๏ธ๐ผ๐ฉ๐ฉ๐๐ฃ๐ฉ๐๐ค๐ฃ ๐๐ฉ. ๐ ๐ช๐ก๐๐๐ฉ & ๐๐ช๐ง๐ง๐ค๐ช๐ฃ๐๐๐ฃ๐ ๐ผ๐ง๐๐๐จ! Feel like the best years are behind you? It's time to rewrite that story! Clinically proven ๐๐ถ๐ผ๐ถ๐ฑ๐ฒ๐ป๐๐ถ๐ฐ๐ฎ๐น ๐๐ผ๐ฟ๐บ๐ผ๐ป๐ฒ ๐ฅ๐ฒ๐ฝ๐น๐ฎ๐ฐ๐ฒ๐บ๐ฒ๐ป๐ ๐ง๐ต๐ฒ๐ฟ๐ฎ๐ฝ๐ aids in rediscovering the vibrant, youthful woman within. Replenish your body's natural hormones for: โ Increased energy! โ Improved sleep and mood! โ Weight management and body contouring! โ Sharper cognitive function! โ Reduced risk of age-related diseases! Embrace the life you deserve! ๐Click Learn More to claim a ๐๐ฟ๐ฒ๐ฒ ๐๐ถ๐ผ๐ถ๐ฑ๐ฒ๐ป๐๐ถ๐ฐ๐ฎ๐น ๐๐ผ๐ฟ๐บ๐ผ๐ป๐ฒ ๐ฅ๐ฒ๐ฝ๐น๐ฎ๐ฐ๐ฒ๐บ๐ฒ๐ป๐ ๐ง๐ต๐ฒ๐ฟ๐ฎ๐ฝ๐ ๐๐ผ๐ป๐๐๐น๐๐ฎ๐๐ถ๐ผ๐ป + $๐ญ๐ฌ๐ฌ ๐๐ถ๐ณ๐ ๐ฉ๐ผ๐๐ฐ๐ต๐ฒ๐ฟ good towards our most popular ๐๐ถ๐ผ๐ถ๐ฑ๐ฒ๐ป๐๐ถ๐ฐ๐ฎ๐น ๐๐ผ๐ฟ๐บ๐ผ๐ป๐ฒ ๐ฅ๐ฒ๐ฝ๐น๐ฎ๐ฐ๐ฒ๐บ๐ฒ๐ป๐ ๐ง๐ต๐ฒ๐ฟ๐ฎ๐ฝ๐ packages! | LEARN_MORE | https://www.medicalspapromos.com/inspire-medical-1 | Inspire Medical - Mt. Juliet | https://www.facebook.com/61566882377575/ | 4 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | medicalspapromos.com | DCO | {{product.description}} | https://www.medicalspapromos.com/inspire-medical-16-optin | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/464805674_1089545292745335_8968732304045513084_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=111&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=9UpbIFizIhoQ7kNvgEiVX92&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AzQIGBqBqGaAdlxnpup3QFn&oh=00_AYBq27y6Y3QIaMx8WtImkku2gFfW_dweIQ7Wq-7KmF5DRA&oe=672FF0FD | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Inspire Medical - Mt. Juliet | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,538 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2313214}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 | ๐ฅ๐ฅClick to read the next chapter for free๐ | ๐Everyone in Norvania knew who Nathan Morrison was. But nobody knew I was his wife. More sadly, when I was tortured by criminals, he was sleeping with another woman... | LEARN_MORE | https://theryfhvn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=1102 | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | theryfhvn.com | VIDEO | ๐Read the next chapters๐ | https://theryfhvn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=11024&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/451589518_457435237072332_5993623328606249911_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=TWBm2rvcksoQ7kNvgHNx-9k&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AzQIGBqBqGaAdlxnpup3QFn&oh=00_AYBT2pdOSpSZDuZALqrRtdPFYQVoFKJ8_pX5r3gwC8sakg&oe=672FD781 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,541 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312542}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 | ๐Read the next chapters๐ | Chapter 1: PROLOGUE: Our three-year marriage is facing many challenges, and growing up as an orphan, who am I to expect anything better? My husband, Carter Whitlock, is everything Iโve ever dreamed of. Strong, kind, and fiercely devoted, heโs swept me off my feet from the moment we first met. In his arms, Iโve found solace and belonging. My mother-in-law, Elmyra, always has a disapproving gaze thatโs never far from my side. The other members of the Whitlock family, too, seem to regard me with suspicion and disdain, as if Iโm an interloper in their midst. I long to earn their acceptance, to prove myself worthy of their family name. Each day, I strive to be the perfect wife for Carter, tending to his needs with care and devotion. Yet no matter how hard I try, it seems as though I can never quite measure up to their expectations. Even so, a sense of determination always stirs within me. I wonโt be cowed by their judgment, nor wonโt I allow their harsh words to dim the light of my love for Carter. I'll be strong and unwavering in my resolve, and Iโll make my husband proud. ------ Hazelโs POV I have an unbelievable secret that I canโt wait to tell my husband. With our three year anniversary coming up, itโs about time we make our family complete. I hear the rumors being spread about me by his relatives; the whisper that Iโm barren. I look down at the little pink plus sign on the test and I smile. Itโs all going to change now. Carter will be so happy when I tell him. When I first met Carter at college, I had just stepped out of the campus coffee shop and a cyclist almost ran me over. Carter stepped in and grabbed me out of harmโs way. I instantly felt butterflies in my stomach. He has been my hero from the very beginning. He is the city's most famous bachelor. and an incredibly rich man. I never thought he would be interested in someone like me. I had nothing to give him. Because of that, I have always felt inferior to him in our marriage. Not everyone approved of the marriage from the beginning. The house staff is respectful, but I think itโs only because I am the mistress. Not because they think I deserve it. I see the judgment in their eyes when they look at me. Both my mother-in-law and sisters-in-law are constantly making comments about my appearance. They love to remind me that I represent the formidable Whitlock family. As if my looks and the way I dress will forever stain their familyโs image. I wasnโt even allowed to make any decisions on my own wedding. I tried to pick out the flowers and I was told my taste was โtoo simpleโ for a wedding to the most nobel family. I have also been told on several occasions that I should be โseen and not heardโ during family meetings. Nobody trusts my opinion, let alone asks for it. Carterโs mother, Elmyra, has always been distant and indifferent to me. She treats me like an outcast and every time she approaches me I get nervous. Her hair is always perfectly done up; her makeup and clothes flawless. She is an intimidating woman and she often makes me feel small. She knows exactly what to say to cut deeply too. โI suppose you are happy riding my sonโs coat tails the rest of your life? What purpose do you serve if you canโt give him an heir?โ โItโs probably for the best, dear. As an orphan, you wouldnโt know the first thing about being a mother anyway.โ โI donโt know what my son was thinking when he decided to marry you. You arenโt strong enough to be the lady of this family.โ But I know I can rely on Carter to protect me from her harsh words and actions when heโs around. He even defends me against his mother when she is hard on me. โI know you want to be a grandmother mom, but Hazel and I are happy. We will have a child when we are ready.โ Then he turns to me and kisses me on the forehead. I donโt know why Elmyra hates me so much. It makes me feel bad about myself, like I will never be good enough for her son. But, from now on, everything is going to change. Even Elmyra will have to start treating me better once she hears the news. I have a husband who adores me, a beautiful home and now, after years of trying, a new addition on the way to make our family complete. Me, an orphan, finally getting a real family to call her own. Just then Carter walks out of the bedroom looking as handsome as ever with his dark blonde hair, piercing blue eyes and chiseled jaw. โMorning, babe. Whatโs for breakfast?โ Carter asks as he strolls into the kitchen. He kisses me on the cheek and lightly squeezes my wrist as he walks past me to get his coffee. โEggs and bacon,โ I reply with a giggle. We eat our breakfast in companionable silence. I cherish every moment alone with my husband. I donโt care what his mother or his other relatives think. I just want his approval. The one person who has truly loved me and been there for me in my life. While Iโm standing at the sink washing dishes, I feel a presence behind me suddenly. Something cold and heavy is placed on my heart. I look down at the most beautiful diamond necklace Iโve ever seen. It has a big cushion cut stone in the center and smaller stones wrapping up the sides of the necklace. โCarter! What is this for?โ I ask breathlessly. โFor being so beautiful,โ he replies. He leads me over to a mirror on the wall and I gasp in surprise. โItโs stunning,โ I say in awe. โTonight Iโd like you to wear it to dinner with that short black dress I like. And, when we get back Iโd like you to wear only this,โ he says suggestively. โYes, sir,โ I say softly. I tip my head back to allow him access to my lips. He kisses me deeply and caresses my body and I lean into him. โI wish I could stay in bed all day with you, but this meeting is important,โ he moans and steps back. โI will be waiting for you,โ I say with a coy look. โWhat would I do without you? You are the love of my life,โ he replies. He gives me another quick kiss and then heโs headed towards the door. I sigh happily, thinking about how much Iโm going to miss him today. We had already planned on going out to dinner, but now it's going to be special. I will tell him Iโm with child tonight and surprise him. Out of the blue, my phone rings. I see that itโs my best friend, Lillian. Iโve been so focused on being the perfect wife for Carter that Iโve lost touch with many of my friends. But Lilian is different. She knows everything about Carter and me. She knows how my mother-in-law and the other family members treat me. She has always been there for me. She knows what to say to make me feel better about anything. -[โHi, Hazel. How are you?โ]- she asks. โIโm doing ok,โ I say. -[โYour voice doesnโt sound ok. Spill it.โ]- โItโs nothing, just had a visit from Elmyra.โ -[โYou really shouldnโt put up with her crap, Hazel. Talk to Carter about it, maybe he can get her to lay off.โ]- โI appreciate that but I think that will just make me look weak to her. Sheโs a complicated woman,โ I say. -[โSheโs a shrew,โ]- Lillianโs sarcasm makes me laugh. โSpeaking of which, I have to get ready for this afternoon tea so she doesnโt have my head. Talk later?โ I ask. -[โSo youโll be gone all afternoon?โ]- โYes, unfortunately. These ladies love to drone on about family traditions,โ I reply and then add, โWhy, do you need something?โ -[โNo, Iโm ok. I was going to ask you to lunch but another time. Iโm always here for you Hazel so if it gets too much give me a call.โ]- โThank you. You are such a great friend,โ I reply warmly. I hang up with Lillian and feel a pang of regret. Iโm going to make it a priority to dedicate more time to our friendship. My day is over quickly. The tea goes very well and I decide to head home early. Usually, Iโd follow the women back to Elmyra's house for dinner. I always want to be part of them. But this time, Iโm very tired. I walk into our apartment and set my bag on the counter. I hum to myself, excited about seeing Carter soon. I start to walk into the kitchen when I hear a noise. It sounds like a moan. I stop what Iโm doing instantly. Fear creeps up my spine. I make my way back towards the sound and I hear it again. Then I hear a bang noise and I almost jump out of my skin. My heart is pounding and my legs feel shaky. Something is wrong. I know it in my gut. I start to push the door open slowly and it makes a small creaking sound. What I see makes me gasp. A woman is grinding on top of Carter and heโs moaning. He grabs her groin and looks up at her adoringly. I feel like someone has just ripped my heart out. My breathing becomes erratic. I start to panic. My knees feel like jello. I clutch the door frame for support. How could he do this to me?! This man who said I was the love of his life just this morning! This man who gave me a beautiful necklace and told me he hated leaving me! Just then, the woman turns to me with an evil grin. Like sheโs enjoying making me watch in horror. I canโt believe my own eyes. I draw shaky breaths as tears fall down my face. My heart pounds mercilessly as I lock eyes with Carterโthe man Iโve once loved, now a mere stranger before me. Everything I thought I knew about my husband. About my life. Destroyed in an instant. The sight before me shocks me to my core. Lillian and Carter. In our bed. Making love. Chapter 2: The man who says he loves me in the morning is now making love with my best friend. Carter's hands roam over Lillian's underdressed body, his lips trailing feverish kisses along her neck, while Lillian's laughter echoes in the room like a cruel taunt. My throat constricts. I want to curse, to scream, to lash out at them with every ounce of fury burning inside me. But my voice fails me, lost in a desert of despair. Finally, Carter and Lillian notice my presence, their affection abruptly extinguished like a candle snuffed out by a gust of wind. My tears fall unchecked now, hot and bitter against my cheeks. Carter scrambles to his feet, hastily pulling on his clothes. โWhy are you here?โ he asks. Lillian remains on the bed, a smirk playing at the corners of her lips, her gaze cold and calculating. She revels in my agony, relishing the destruction she has wrought. โItโs not what you think it is,โ Carter says. My heart shatters into a million jagged pieces. I need to get out of here! I clutch at my ventricle, willing my heart to keep beating. Carter catches up to me, his hand reaching out to touch my arm, but I recoil from his touch as if burned. "Hazel, letโs talk," he demands, his voice raw with emotion. But I shake my head, my resolve hardening with each passing moment. โTalk about what?โ My voice is a mere ghost of its former strength. โAbout how you slept with my best friend behind my back?โ Now, I'm left shattered, questioning every moment of intimacy with Carter, every laugh shared with Lillian. Was it all a facade, a cruel illusion of love and friendship? The pain is unbearable, the disbelief suffocating! I make it back to our house after a hazy drive. I ascend to the master bedroom, my movements fueled by a desperate need to escape. With trembling hands, I begin to pull out my clothes and belongings from the cabinets and drawers, stuffing them haphazardly into a suitcase. I donโt care how messy it looks, donโt care about anything except getting away from all of it! "Whatโs gotten into you this time?" Elmyra calls out, breaking through the haze of my grief. I turn to her, standing in the doorway, her eyes narrowed, her jaw clenched. Her aura exudes mockery and arrogance. I manage to choke out, "Iโm leaving." Elmyra hisses, as if wanting to curse at me. But before she can speak again, I brush past her, down the stairs and flee from the house, my suitcase clutched tightly in my numbing hands. I steady my breath, then climb into my car and start the engine, the roar of the motor drowning out the tumultuous thoughts swirling in my mind. I drive without direction; my subconscious takes control of the steering wheel and leads me to the only place I may feel safe - my parents' house. Mama is actually waiting for me at the threshold, Iโm overwhelmed that I ignore the fact why she knows Iโm coming. I walk in the doorway and papa, whoโs reading a paper, frowns and asks, "Why do you look like that?โ I sink onto the sofa, struggling to hold back my sobs. "What happened?" Mama perches on the edge of the sofa, her hand reaching out to brush away the tears that are staining my cheeks. I take a shaky breath, my heart constricting with pain. "I caught Carter and Lillian...together." I thought I'd have my parentsโ support. But then, to my horror, their expressions darken, a look of apprehension crossing their faces. "Hazel," mama begins, her tone accusatory. "What have you done wrong?" Mamaโs words suffocate me with its cruelty. โHe is cheating on meโ!That asshoโโ Slap! My head rears back from pain and shock. Papa just slaps me across the face! I hold my hand to my cheek. โGo back to Carter now, apologize for leaving, promise him that you won't do it again and that you'll stay by his side.โ From the looks on their faces, I realize that they don't care about Carter's cheating. Only that I have brought disgrace upon them. Mamaโs eyes are cold as she adds, "You must have done something wrong to cause Carter to cheat on you. Have you thought about what it would do to our family? Your brother's scholarship is still on Carter's dime. Your sister is about to out in the society and can't be dragged down by you. Now, do everything you can to not let Carter leave you.โ This is my parents, my adoptive parents. I grew up pleasing them and being the best student in school, but they never look at me. Being adopted at a young age will do that. You are so grateful to the people who have taken you in. You are terrified of making a mistake that they may send you back to the orphanage and decide to adopt another child. A child thatโs more obedient, smarter, better. So you bust yourself trying to make them proud of you. You stifle any part of yourself that may talk back or speak up. It wasn't until I married Carter that papa accepted me. The day we got married was the happiest day of my life. I thought mama and papa have considered me family all these years, now it turns out I was wrong. They don't care about me, at all. Papa says, "Have you had enough, I'm going to call Carter and have him bring you home. " I canโt take this anymore, this isnโt what Iโm here for! This place can't provide the safety or even the comfort I desperately need! I turn on my heels and storm out of the house with my suitcase in hands before they can react. Humiliated, despised, and helplessโฆ as I begin to acknowledge that I lost my husband and my family on the same day. Chapter 3: It all clicks. The late night calls, the flirtings, the unusual caring with Lillian - their chuckles in bed, my parents' coldness, Elmyra's sneers. My mind replays these scenes over and over again, like a broken record. I sit on the edge of the bed of the apartment I rented since last night, the weight of the world keeps pressing down on my shoulders. Just as Iโm sinking deeper into the darkness of my thoughts, my phone shatters the silence. I jolt as I wipe away my tears. My hand trembles slightly as I glance at the screen. Then, my jaw clenches in anger when I see the caller IDโLillian. โReally? You still have the guts to call me?โ I hiss. -["Listen, Hazel, it's evident where his heart lies, and frankly, your dramatics won't change that. Just gracefully accept the truth and move on, like any sensible person would."]- Lilian says in her sweet voice, without a hint of remorse or shame. -[โWe need to talk, Express Cafe, now.โ]- My grip on the phone tightens, my nails digging into my palm as I fight to keep my composure. I force my anger down, steeling myself for whatever lies Lillian is about to spin. "Fool me once" I say courageously, โIf you thinkโฆโ -[โDon't you want to know why and when your husband cheated on you?โ]- She's been my best friend long enough to know what will pinch me. She hangs up, the silence that follows echoing in the small apartment like a deafening roar. Express Cafe is just a few minutes' drive away. I slip into a corner booth and wait, quickly smooth concealer around my swollen eyes, as I watch the door with bated breath. Lilian comes in blushing like a woman in love, and ironically, her love has turned out to be mine. An awkward silence ensues and we stare at our respective coffee cups for a while. โWhy, Lillian?โ I finally ask. "Hazel, you need to face the truth. Carter loves me, not you. He's only with you because he wants an heir, a baby. Once he gets what he wants from you, he'll leave you for me." "Is that so?" I ask, my voice trembling slightly despite my best efforts to maintain my composure. A very faint smile plays at the corners of Lilianโs lips that she tries so hard to hide by tilting her head down as she reaches into her bag and produces her phone. With a few taps of her finger, she turns the screen towards me, revealing a string of text messages between her and Carter. "He's been seeing me behind your back, Hazel," Lilian says, her voice holding a tinged of a smug satisfaction. "He's been telling me everything. How he can't stand being with you, how he's only staying with you for appearanceโs sake. He's using you, and you're too blind to see it." My breath dries in my throat as I read the messages. The Carter in the text messages is nothing like the husband I knew. I can tell by his texts that he is happy, which makes my heart ache even more. โBut what does that have to do with why you betrayed me? You were my best friend,โ I say, trying not to show how much these messages hurt me. โAt first we were friends, but then I realized I could never really respect you. The way you let people walk all over you...Iโm sorry but itโs just pathetic. And then I stayed close to you so I could be near Carter,โ she replies. โHe never loved you, Iโm always his true love. He met me first. โ she continues. I swallow a lump in my throat and quietly take a deep breath. โHow long has this been going on?โ I ask. โPretty much since the beginning. A few months into your marriage, maybe,โ she says without remorse. My head is reeling with the idea that Carter has been cheating on me for so long. Iโm shocked that Lillian has such a mean streak. Sheโs never my friend to begin with. How could I have let these kinds of people into my life, into my heart? Just then I hear the door jingle, prompting me to look up. To my shock, Carter appears. โYou called Carter?โ I ask Lillian in a horrified tone. โYou two really need to talk. You need to think about your life choices, accept the reality and it's good for all of us.โ she replies snidely. She gets up to leave and Carter takes her place in the opposite chair. "Come home with me. We had a good time, didn't we? We can still live the life we had before. Itโs not like you donโt enjoy the things we do together,โ he says. He tries to run his hand up my arm but I slap him away. โDonโt touch me. I only enjoyed them when I thought I was the only one you were doing it with!โ I whisper between my gritted teeth. "I'm the only one who can stand you in bed, you know how boring you used to be in bed? I made you moan over and over. You know you still want me..." He stares at me with those cold eyes. The eyes I once loved. Heโs finally stopped pretending. Itโs all been an act. I see that now. Carter changes his personality to suit his needs. He manipulates people to get what he wants. He manipulated me before and heโs trying to do it again! I say nothing, trying to keep my anger in check. โI donโt know why you are fighting this so hard. Most women would die to be in your place. Theyโd be very happy to get even the tiniest scrap from me,โ He pauses, waiting for my reply. But I keep my silence. โYou agreed to my terms. I have your signature on the prenuptial agreement to prove it. So get over yourself and fulfill your duty to me. Then you can go on about your sad little life, while I rise to the top and make my family proud,โ he boasts. โDid you ever love me?โ I ask. "Love is too strong of a word.โ He laughs out loud as if he has heard something ridiculous. โYou have good breeding, your parents assured me like you would be an obedient wife, and all along you've done well. Why don't you keep it up? Come home now, before I run out of patience." Heโs never loved me. His tone reminds me of the new racehorse he bought last month. A new, premium racehorse, presentable, brings him victories and can be bred to produce foals again. He never sees me as a wife, or even as a person. โNot a chance,โ I say proudly. โRemember your prenup? If you don't bear me children, you will be ruined. Your family will be in debt for the rest of their lives. Don't you dare try to leave me.โ His pupils dilate like that of a wild animal's, and he chokes me with his hand. I can barely breathe, I can feel heโs serious about hurting me, this man I had loved is literally taking my breath away. โIโm leaving you, one way or anotherโฆ." With what strength I have left I try to remove his hand and finish the sentence with the last of my breath. My peripheral vision sees that people are already whispering and looking over at us, and some even take out their phones and start taking pictures of us. โHow are youโฆโ He growls, low and dangerous. He notices the look in the crowd's eyes, and I'm betting he wonโt dare make a scandal like domestic scandal in public if he wants to remain reputable. He stares at me with anger in his eyes. He then lets go and I can finally breathe heavily. I cough, calling his bluff. He finally breaks the stare and leaves in a huff. The look on his face is absolutely worth it. I may have to pay the consequences later. But for now, I feel free for the first time in my life. I will leave Carter, no matter the cost. Chapter 4: Read your contract - This should be on my tombstone. I dug out my prenup from when papa told me not to worry about anything, that they would protect me and all I had to do was sign it, and so I did. But now, I realize that every conditioning of this prenup is working against me. My parents sold me into marriage, and theyโll be furious with me for getting a divorce. Theyโll be bankrupt and vulnerable to attacks without Carterโs protection. โIf you want a divorce, you wonโt get a penny from me. You will no longer be under my protection. Think twice, Hazel.โ Those are Carter's words, which are burned in my memory. I just wanna brush off the agreement and his threat by not thinking too much about them. But then, they start to haunt me, making me understand the realness of it all. Escaping isnโt a possibility, and Carter proves thatโฆ The rain pours as I stand on the doorstep of my rented house, the water mingles with the tears I try so hard to hold back. โYour husband's men took your car. I was about to tell you while theyโre here so you can talk to them about it, but theyโre so aggressive and I got scared that they may hurt me,โ my landlord says. A rush of anger and helplessness courses through me as I stare at the empty space of the parking lot where I last left my car. As if thatโs not enough for Carter, he adds another unwanted surprise for me. โAlso,โ the landlord begins, pity and fear etched across her wrinkled face. "Your husband called through the cellphone of one of his men. He threatened me, said he'd ruin my business if I don't evict you. So.., I can't keep the house rented to you anymore.โ The world seems to tilt, the ground shifting beneath my feet. "B-but, I have nowhere to go. Besides, I need time to find a new place." The landlord shakes her head, her face stern. "I can't risk it. The young Whitlock has too much influence. I can't afford to be caught in whatever marital problem you have." I wanna protest again, but sheโs right. Carter may put her in a difficult situation like heโs doing to me now, and I donโt wanna be the reason for it. With a heavy heart, I pack my things, and drag myself and my suitcase out into the storm. I then head to the nearest hotel. Without cash, I rely on my credit cards. The clerk at the front desk shakes his head as he hands back my credit card to me. "I'm sorry, Mrs. Whitlock. Your card has been declined." My cheeks burn with shame. "Can you try again, please?" The clerk tries again,... and beep! Declined, again! Maybe this hotelโs POS machine isnโt working - at least thatโs what I wanna believe in, though deep down, my inkling is telling me something else. I walk to another hotel, and approach the front desk, my hands shaking as I present my credit card. "I need a room, please," I say, trying to keep my voice steady. To my surprise, without even taking my credit card, the clerk shakes her head. "I'm sorry, Mrs. Whitlock. We can't help you." โWhy?โ I ask with a little frustration. The manager, who looks uncomfortable, comes to the clerkโs rescue, and answers, โMr. Carter Whitlock has banned you from our hotel." Youโve got to be kidding me? Where would I go now? Thereโs no refuge for me now. Carterโs reach is far and his influence powerful, making sure Iโm isolated, vulnerable. Heโs trying to force me back, cutting me off financially, stripping away my options. Soon I will be in debt and poor, which isnโt good, especially that Iโm now going to be a mother. I have to find a way out of this, and the only temporary solution I can think of is to pawn my pearls and earrings for some cash. I quickly head to a pawnshop, and its owner eyes me as I lay my jewelry on the counter. "I need to cash these," I say. He picks up the pearls, turning them over in his hands, his eyes narrowing as he glances at my suitcase. "You left home?โ โY-yes, and itโs hard to find a place to stay. My credit cards have been declining, so I need cash.โ The owner smirks as he says, โNice pieces, but I can't give you much for them. Market's down, you see." My heart sinks. I know heโs lying, taking advantage of my desperation. But what choice do I have - haggling? Then what? Get another rejection? I donโt wanna face with that. "How much?" I ask, bracing myself. He names a figure thatโs insultingly low, but I nod, swallowing my pride and the bitter taste of defeat. "I'll take it." At least I have money that'll last for a few days if I spend it wisely. Thatโs what matters for now. He counts out the bills with deliberate slowness while his eyes on me, a predator sensing vulnerability. When he finally hands over the money, I grab it. But I have to stay in the lobby for a moment, waiting for the rain to stop. Suddenly, my eyes flicker on the TV thatโs currently showing a flash news with a caption; โThe Divorce of the Centuryโ. The wife, once vilified by the town, now stood vindicated by Marius Thorne, the town's most revered lawyer. โMarius Thorne,โ I echo. Marius Thorneโs image flashes on the screen, a vision of confidence and success. His gold eyes, piercing, enchanting even. According to the news, he's a partner at the biggest law firm in town and he never loses in court. โHe may be who I need,โ I murmur to myself, excitement surging within me. Once the rain stops, I begin searching for a new place to stay. With newfound determination and what little cash I have, I find refuge in a cramped flat that doesn't check documents. The landlord, a cold and distant old lady, lays down the rules; no pets allowed, no men allowed, before disappearing from my sight. In this tiny room, my troubled heart finally quiets down. For now, Iโm safe, hidden from Carter's relentless pursuit. Through G****e, I search the name โMarius Thorneโ, and quickly call the numbers on the law firm profile heโs working with. After a few rings, a female voice echoes from the other end of the line. -[โCounsel Commanders Law Firm, how can we help you?โ]- โHi! Iโm filing for divorce and I need to make an appointment with Marius Thorne, is he available to speak with?โ Chapter 5: Divorce is never as easy as I thought it would be. -[โIโm calling to inform you that Mr. Thorne has decided to NOT take your case. We can recommend good divorce lawyers if neededโฆ.โ]- The womanโs tone is cool and reserved over the phone. Confusion clouds my thoughts, and questions race through my mindโwhy would he turn me away? Is he busy? Or does he find my case not worthy of his time? I quickly rush to the law firm, hoping to personally meet and talk to Marius Throne, but Iโm told by his secretary that appointments with Marius Throne are currently lined up for a month from now. So, heโs busy. Even so,... Iโm still hoping that heโll have a change of heart and accept my divorce case if only he can understand my situation. Itโs a good case, hard case to be exact - my prenup agreement is harsh and my husband was caught cheating red-handed. This may pique his interest. The bustling lobby seems to shrink in an instant as I, lost in my thoughts, collide with someone in a sharp, tailored suit. I stumble back, instinctively apologizing. "Oh, I'm so sor-!" But when the man speaks, I freeze mid-apology. "Hazel?" he says, his voice a mix of surprise and recognition. My brow furrows as I stare at him, trying to place the familiar handsome face. Then, it hits me. "Leslie?!" I exclaim, my confusion giving way to excitement. "It's nice to see you again!" Leslie returns my smile, his eyes lighting up with warmth. "It's nice to see you again too." My mind trips me back to our high school days, the laughter, the secrets shared, which were overshadowed by the years of silence that followed my marriage to Carter. "Itโs been a long time,โ I say. โWhat are you doing in a place like this?" A proud smile tugs at Leslie's lips as he proudly gestures around the lobby. "I work here as a Senior Legal Associate." Senior Legal Associate? - I echo inwardly with awe. Quickly, a glimmer of possibility shines through my uncertainty! And when Leslie asks the question back to me, I know I have to seize the opportunity. โHow about you, what are you doing here?โ In a heartbeat, I reply, "I'm divorcing my husband, and I need to talk to Attorney Thorne now. His secretary said he has many cases lined up for him. But heโs my only hope. Can you help me meet him, please?" As I wait for his response, I look into his eyes, praying for a lifeline. โMr. Thorne is a troublesome boss, difficult to work with, and even harder to persuade,โ he says. My stubbornness refuses to let doubt cloud my determination. Iโm desperate. Despite the warning signs, I press on, my resolve unshaken. "Just let me talk to him. Then I'll decide whether I still want to trust my case to him or not... please?" Leslie's smile turns brittle. "Alright. I'll try to talk to him first about you. Follow me." I follow Leslie, then wait outside one of the doors that are lining the corridor as I watch him disappear into the room. I hope Leslie's charm will be enough to sway Marius Thorne, to at least grant me a chance to plead my case. And maybe, just maybe, if I can make him understand, I can turn the tide in my favor. After a moment of agony, Leslie finally emerges from the room, his smile radiant as he meets my eager gaze. โYou may now go in,โ he announces, his voice tinged with excitement. My heart leaps with anticipation, and I can't help but squeal with delight. With a grin, I say, โThank you so, so much!โ I waste no time in crossing the threshold into the room. As I close the door, my eyes quickly fall upon Marius Thorne behind the mahogany desk. Heโs tall and heโs impeccably handsome too, more so than Leslie and even Carter himself. Clad in a printed suit, he exudes an air of impassiveness that sends chills down my spine. His jawline is sharp, his gold eyes are more piercing in person than they were on TV, and his dark hair perfectly groomed. Mariusโ voice is devoid of emotion just like his expression. "My secretary and Leslie told me that youโre planning to divorce your husband, Carter of the Whitlock Family.โ Surprised, I ask, "You know my husband?" Is Marius Thorne turning me off because of my husband? He dodges my question, and delivers his verdict instead. "I have a full schedule for the rest of the year to take on new cases. I can recommend good divorce lawyers to you If you need..." Disappointment and frustration foam in my heart, my hands clenching to my sides. "Is there anything I can do to change your mind?" Marius remains unmoved. Without a tiny hint of second-thought, he crashes me with a one-word answer, โNone.โ Pride becomes my shield from rejection. Iโve walked away from anyone where Iโm unwanted. I did that from Carter and his family, from my parents, God, I can just walk away from this stranger too! With a forced smile, I turn to the door. But just as I reach the threshold, a hand grips my wrist with unexpected force. Then, Carter's angry face looms over me. I struggle to maintain my balance. "Carter, let go of me!" I demand, my voice trembling with fear and defiance. โWhat do you think youโre doing here?!โ he asks back, his face red with beasty fury. Carter drags me aggressively. I try to get rid of him, shoving my wrist from his iron grip, but his strength is overpowering. Finally, we reach the lobby, where curious eyes watch our confrontation unfold. Carter releases my wrist, but my humiliation doesn't end there. In a voice sharp and cold, he unleashes a torrent of threats that makes my blood run cold. "I own half of this law firm. When my wife came to my firm looking for a divorce lawyer, You think I wouldn't notice that?โโ" My eyes widen in surpriseโฆ thatโs news to me. Carter pinches my hand and says, โYou didn't really think that you could find a lawyer who would dare take you on, did you?โ My mind goes blank, could this be the reason why Marius Thorne kept refusing me? Is there any other divorce attorney in town who will take my case? Whoโs not scared of Carter? Carter grabs my arm once again. โStop defying me! You canโt just waltz out of our marriage without consequences. Didnโt I already make sure you know that? The hardship youโre going through now is just the tip of the iceberg of what else I can do to you." I try to let go myself, but itโs no use, Carter is much stronger than I am. He then tightens his grip on me, which prompts me to hiss in pain. โCarter, please,โ I beg. Carter parts his lips, but before he can continue his tirade, a pair of hands intervenes, grasping both my arm and his. I look up, and see Marius standing before us. | LEARN_MORE | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&u | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | redtgb.com | VIDEO | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/453241828_3339083233053387_7023418475224248998_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=107&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=eQb6dvad400Q7kNvgGbXBXD&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AzQIGBqBqGaAdlxnpup3QFn&oh=00_AYBtNTTzjLi9VRmkxodCLjnsxlJPmKxyg4XpVkr1hm29Yg&oe=67300C05 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,540 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312542}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 | ๐Read the next chapters๐ | Chapter 1: PROLOGUE: Our three-year marriage is facing many challenges, and growing up as an orphan, who am I to expect anything better? My husband, Carter Whitlock, is everything Iโve ever dreamed of. Strong, kind, and fiercely devoted, heโs swept me off my feet from the moment we first met. In his arms, Iโve found solace and belonging. My mother-in-law, Elmyra, always has a disapproving gaze thatโs never far from my side. The other members of the Whitlock family, too, seem to regard me with suspicion and disdain, as if Iโm an interloper in their midst. I long to earn their acceptance, to prove myself worthy of their family name. Each day, I strive to be the perfect wife for Carter, tending to his needs with care and devotion. Yet no matter how hard I try, it seems as though I can never quite measure up to their expectations. Even so, a sense of determination always stirs within me. I wonโt be cowed by their judgment, nor wonโt I allow their harsh words to dim the light of my love for Carter. I'll be strong and unwavering in my resolve, and Iโll make my husband proud. ------ Hazelโs POV I have an unbelievable secret that I canโt wait to tell my husband. With our three year anniversary coming up, itโs about time we make our family complete. I hear the rumors being spread about me by his relatives; the whisper that Iโm barren. I look down at the little pink plus sign on the test and I smile. Itโs all going to change now. Carter will be so happy when I tell him. When I first met Carter at college, I had just stepped out of the campus coffee shop and a cyclist almost ran me over. Carter stepped in and grabbed me out of harmโs way. I instantly felt butterflies in my stomach. He has been my hero from the very beginning. He is the city's most famous bachelor. and an incredibly rich man. I never thought he would be interested in someone like me. I had nothing to give him. Because of that, I have always felt inferior to him in our marriage. Not everyone approved of the marriage from the beginning. The house staff is respectful, but I think itโs only because I am the mistress. Not because they think I deserve it. I see the judgment in their eyes when they look at me. Both my mother-in-law and sisters-in-law are constantly making comments about my appearance. They love to remind me that I represent the formidable Whitlock family. As if my looks and the way I dress will forever stain their familyโs image. I wasnโt even allowed to make any decisions on my own wedding. I tried to pick out the flowers and I was told my taste was โtoo simpleโ for a wedding to the most nobel family. I have also been told on several occasions that I should be โseen and not heardโ during family meetings. Nobody trusts my opinion, let alone asks for it. Carterโs mother, Elmyra, has always been distant and indifferent to me. She treats me like an outcast and every time she approaches me I get nervous. Her hair is always perfectly done up; her makeup and clothes flawless. She is an intimidating woman and she often makes me feel small. She knows exactly what to say to cut deeply too. โI suppose you are happy riding my sonโs coat tails the rest of your life? What purpose do you serve if you canโt give him an heir?โ โItโs probably for the best, dear. As an orphan, you wouldnโt know the first thing about being a mother anyway.โ โI donโt know what my son was thinking when he decided to marry you. You arenโt strong enough to be the lady of this family.โ But I know I can rely on Carter to protect me from her harsh words and actions when heโs around. He even defends me against his mother when she is hard on me. โI know you want to be a grandmother mom, but Hazel and I are happy. We will have a child when we are ready.โ Then he turns to me and kisses me on the forehead. I donโt know why Elmyra hates me so much. It makes me feel bad about myself, like I will never be good enough for her son. But, from now on, everything is going to change. Even Elmyra will have to start treating me better once she hears the news. I have a husband who adores me, a beautiful home and now, after years of trying, a new addition on the way to make our family complete. Me, an orphan, finally getting a real family to call her own. Just then Carter walks out of the bedroom looking as handsome as ever with his dark blonde hair, piercing blue eyes and chiseled jaw. โMorning, babe. Whatโs for breakfast?โ Carter asks as he strolls into the kitchen. He kisses me on the cheek and lightly squeezes my wrist as he walks past me to get his coffee. โEggs and bacon,โ I reply with a giggle. We eat our breakfast in companionable silence. I cherish every moment alone with my husband. I donโt care what his mother or his other relatives think. I just want his approval. The one person who has truly loved me and been there for me in my life. While Iโm standing at the sink washing dishes, I feel a presence behind me suddenly. Something cold and heavy is placed on my heart. I look down at the most beautiful diamond necklace Iโve ever seen. It has a big cushion cut stone in the center and smaller stones wrapping up the sides of the necklace. โCarter! What is this for?โ I ask breathlessly. โFor being so beautiful,โ he replies. He leads me over to a mirror on the wall and I gasp in surprise. โItโs stunning,โ I say in awe. โTonight Iโd like you to wear it to dinner with that short black dress I like. And, when we get back Iโd like you to wear only this,โ he says suggestively. โYes, sir,โ I say softly. I tip my head back to allow him access to my lips. He kisses me deeply and caresses my body and I lean into him. โI wish I could stay in bed all day with you, but this meeting is important,โ he moans and steps back. โI will be waiting for you,โ I say with a coy look. โWhat would I do without you? You are the love of my life,โ he replies. He gives me another quick kiss and then heโs headed towards the door. I sigh happily, thinking about how much Iโm going to miss him today. We had already planned on going out to dinner, but now it's going to be special. I will tell him Iโm with child tonight and surprise him. Out of the blue, my phone rings. I see that itโs my best friend, Lillian. Iโve been so focused on being the perfect wife for Carter that Iโve lost touch with many of my friends. But Lilian is different. She knows everything about Carter and me. She knows how my mother-in-law and the other family members treat me. She has always been there for me. She knows what to say to make me feel better about anything. -[โHi, Hazel. How are you?โ]- she asks. โIโm doing ok,โ I say. -[โYour voice doesnโt sound ok. Spill it.โ]- โItโs nothing, just had a visit from Elmyra.โ -[โYou really shouldnโt put up with her crap, Hazel. Talk to Carter about it, maybe he can get her to lay off.โ]- โI appreciate that but I think that will just make me look weak to her. Sheโs a complicated woman,โ I say. -[โSheโs a shrew,โ]- Lillianโs sarcasm makes me laugh. โSpeaking of which, I have to get ready for this afternoon tea so she doesnโt have my head. Talk later?โ I ask. -[โSo youโll be gone all afternoon?โ]- โYes, unfortunately. These ladies love to drone on about family traditions,โ I reply and then add, โWhy, do you need something?โ -[โNo, Iโm ok. I was going to ask you to lunch but another time. Iโm always here for you Hazel so if it gets too much give me a call.โ]- โThank you. You are such a great friend,โ I reply warmly. I hang up with Lillian and feel a pang of regret. Iโm going to make it a priority to dedicate more time to our friendship. My day is over quickly. The tea goes very well and I decide to head home early. Usually, Iโd follow the women back to Elmyra's house for dinner. I always want to be part of them. But this time, Iโm very tired. I walk into our apartment and set my bag on the counter. I hum to myself, excited about seeing Carter soon. I start to walk into the kitchen when I hear a noise. It sounds like a moan. I stop what Iโm doing instantly. Fear creeps up my spine. I make my way back towards the sound and I hear it again. Then I hear a bang noise and I almost jump out of my skin. My heart is pounding and my legs feel shaky. Something is wrong. I know it in my gut. I start to push the door open slowly and it makes a small creaking sound. What I see makes me gasp. A woman is grinding on top of Carter and heโs moaning. He grabs her groin and looks up at her adoringly. I feel like someone has just ripped my heart out. My breathing becomes erratic. I start to panic. My knees feel like jello. I clutch the door frame for support. How could he do this to me?! This man who said I was the love of his life just this morning! This man who gave me a beautiful necklace and told me he hated leaving me! Just then, the woman turns to me with an evil grin. Like sheโs enjoying making me watch in horror. I canโt believe my own eyes. I draw shaky breaths as tears fall down my face. My heart pounds mercilessly as I lock eyes with Carterโthe man Iโve once loved, now a mere stranger before me. Everything I thought I knew about my husband. About my life. Destroyed in an instant. The sight before me shocks me to my core. Lillian and Carter. In our bed. Making love. Chapter 2: The man who says he loves me in the morning is now making love with my best friend. Carter's hands roam over Lillian's underdressed body, his lips trailing feverish kisses along her neck, while Lillian's laughter echoes in the room like a cruel taunt. My throat constricts. I want to curse, to scream, to lash out at them with every ounce of fury burning inside me. But my voice fails me, lost in a desert of despair. Finally, Carter and Lillian notice my presence, their affection abruptly extinguished like a candle snuffed out by a gust of wind. My tears fall unchecked now, hot and bitter against my cheeks. Carter scrambles to his feet, hastily pulling on his clothes. โWhy are you here?โ he asks. Lillian remains on the bed, a smirk playing at the corners of her lips, her gaze cold and calculating. She revels in my agony, relishing the destruction she has wrought. โItโs not what you think it is,โ Carter says. My heart shatters into a million jagged pieces. I need to get out of here! I clutch at my ventricle, willing my heart to keep beating. Carter catches up to me, his hand reaching out to touch my arm, but I recoil from his touch as if burned. "Hazel, letโs talk," he demands, his voice raw with emotion. But I shake my head, my resolve hardening with each passing moment. โTalk about what?โ My voice is a mere ghost of its former strength. โAbout how you slept with my best friend behind my back?โ Now, I'm left shattered, questioning every moment of intimacy with Carter, every laugh shared with Lillian. Was it all a facade, a cruel illusion of love and friendship? The pain is unbearable, the disbelief suffocating! I make it back to our house after a hazy drive. I ascend to the master bedroom, my movements fueled by a desperate need to escape. With trembling hands, I begin to pull out my clothes and belongings from the cabinets and drawers, stuffing them haphazardly into a suitcase. I donโt care how messy it looks, donโt care about anything except getting away from all of it! "Whatโs gotten into you this time?" Elmyra calls out, breaking through the haze of my grief. I turn to her, standing in the doorway, her eyes narrowed, her jaw clenched. Her aura exudes mockery and arrogance. I manage to choke out, "Iโm leaving." Elmyra hisses, as if wanting to curse at me. But before she can speak again, I brush past her, down the stairs and flee from the house, my suitcase clutched tightly in my numbing hands. I steady my breath, then climb into my car and start the engine, the roar of the motor drowning out the tumultuous thoughts swirling in my mind. I drive without direction; my subconscious takes control of the steering wheel and leads me to the only place I may feel safe - my parents' house. Mama is actually waiting for me at the threshold, Iโm overwhelmed that I ignore the fact why she knows Iโm coming. I walk in the doorway and papa, whoโs reading a paper, frowns and asks, "Why do you look like that?โ I sink onto the sofa, struggling to hold back my sobs. "What happened?" Mama perches on the edge of the sofa, her hand reaching out to brush away the tears that are staining my cheeks. I take a shaky breath, my heart constricting with pain. "I caught Carter and Lillian...together." I thought I'd have my parentsโ support. But then, to my horror, their expressions darken, a look of apprehension crossing their faces. "Hazel," mama begins, her tone accusatory. "What have you done wrong?" Mamaโs words suffocate me with its cruelty. โHe is cheating on meโ!That asshoโโ Slap! My head rears back from pain and shock. Papa just slaps me across the face! I hold my hand to my cheek. โGo back to Carter now, apologize for leaving, promise him that you won't do it again and that you'll stay by his side.โ From the looks on their faces, I realize that they don't care about Carter's cheating. Only that I have brought disgrace upon them. Mamaโs eyes are cold as she adds, "You must have done something wrong to cause Carter to cheat on you. Have you thought about what it would do to our family? Your brother's scholarship is still on Carter's dime. Your sister is about to out in the society and can't be dragged down by you. Now, do everything you can to not let Carter leave you.โ This is my parents, my adoptive parents. I grew up pleasing them and being the best student in school, but they never look at me. Being adopted at a young age will do that. You are so grateful to the people who have taken you in. You are terrified of making a mistake that they may send you back to the orphanage and decide to adopt another child. A child thatโs more obedient, smarter, better. So you bust yourself trying to make them proud of you. You stifle any part of yourself that may talk back or speak up. It wasn't until I married Carter that papa accepted me. The day we got married was the happiest day of my life. I thought mama and papa have considered me family all these years, now it turns out I was wrong. They don't care about me, at all. Papa says, "Have you had enough, I'm going to call Carter and have him bring you home. " I canโt take this anymore, this isnโt what Iโm here for! This place can't provide the safety or even the comfort I desperately need! I turn on my heels and storm out of the house with my suitcase in hands before they can react. Humiliated, despised, and helplessโฆ as I begin to acknowledge that I lost my husband and my family on the same day. Chapter 3: It all clicks. The late night calls, the flirtings, the unusual caring with Lillian - their chuckles in bed, my parents' coldness, Elmyra's sneers. My mind replays these scenes over and over again, like a broken record. I sit on the edge of the bed of the apartment I rented since last night, the weight of the world keeps pressing down on my shoulders. Just as Iโm sinking deeper into the darkness of my thoughts, my phone shatters the silence. I jolt as I wipe away my tears. My hand trembles slightly as I glance at the screen. Then, my jaw clenches in anger when I see the caller IDโLillian. โReally? You still have the guts to call me?โ I hiss. -["Listen, Hazel, it's evident where his heart lies, and frankly, your dramatics won't change that. Just gracefully accept the truth and move on, like any sensible person would."]- Lilian says in her sweet voice, without a hint of remorse or shame. -[โWe need to talk, Express Cafe, now.โ]- My grip on the phone tightens, my nails digging into my palm as I fight to keep my composure. I force my anger down, steeling myself for whatever lies Lillian is about to spin. "Fool me once" I say courageously, โIf you thinkโฆโ -[โDon't you want to know why and when your husband cheated on you?โ]- She's been my best friend long enough to know what will pinch me. She hangs up, the silence that follows echoing in the small apartment like a deafening roar. Express Cafe is just a few minutes' drive away. I slip into a corner booth and wait, quickly smooth concealer around my swollen eyes, as I watch the door with bated breath. Lilian comes in blushing like a woman in love, and ironically, her love has turned out to be mine. An awkward silence ensues and we stare at our respective coffee cups for a while. โWhy, Lillian?โ I finally ask. "Hazel, you need to face the truth. Carter loves me, not you. He's only with you because he wants an heir, a baby. Once he gets what he wants from you, he'll leave you for me." "Is that so?" I ask, my voice trembling slightly despite my best efforts to maintain my composure. A very faint smile plays at the corners of Lilianโs lips that she tries so hard to hide by tilting her head down as she reaches into her bag and produces her phone. With a few taps of her finger, she turns the screen towards me, revealing a string of text messages between her and Carter. "He's been seeing me behind your back, Hazel," Lilian says, her voice holding a tinged of a smug satisfaction. "He's been telling me everything. How he can't stand being with you, how he's only staying with you for appearanceโs sake. He's using you, and you're too blind to see it." My breath dries in my throat as I read the messages. The Carter in the text messages is nothing like the husband I knew. I can tell by his texts that he is happy, which makes my heart ache even more. โBut what does that have to do with why you betrayed me? You were my best friend,โ I say, trying not to show how much these messages hurt me. โAt first we were friends, but then I realized I could never really respect you. The way you let people walk all over you...Iโm sorry but itโs just pathetic. And then I stayed close to you so I could be near Carter,โ she replies. โHe never loved you, Iโm always his true love. He met me first. โ she continues. I swallow a lump in my throat and quietly take a deep breath. โHow long has this been going on?โ I ask. โPretty much since the beginning. A few months into your marriage, maybe,โ she says without remorse. My head is reeling with the idea that Carter has been cheating on me for so long. Iโm shocked that Lillian has such a mean streak. Sheโs never my friend to begin with. How could I have let these kinds of people into my life, into my heart? Just then I hear the door jingle, prompting me to look up. To my shock, Carter appears. โYou called Carter?โ I ask Lillian in a horrified tone. โYou two really need to talk. You need to think about your life choices, accept the reality and it's good for all of us.โ she replies snidely. She gets up to leave and Carter takes her place in the opposite chair. "Come home with me. We had a good time, didn't we? We can still live the life we had before. Itโs not like you donโt enjoy the things we do together,โ he says. He tries to run his hand up my arm but I slap him away. โDonโt touch me. I only enjoyed them when I thought I was the only one you were doing it with!โ I whisper between my gritted teeth. "I'm the only one who can stand you in bed, you know how boring you used to be in bed? I made you moan over and over. You know you still want me..." He stares at me with those cold eyes. The eyes I once loved. Heโs finally stopped pretending. Itโs all been an act. I see that now. Carter changes his personality to suit his needs. He manipulates people to get what he wants. He manipulated me before and heโs trying to do it again! I say nothing, trying to keep my anger in check. โI donโt know why you are fighting this so hard. Most women would die to be in your place. Theyโd be very happy to get even the tiniest scrap from me,โ He pauses, waiting for my reply. But I keep my silence. โYou agreed to my terms. I have your signature on the prenuptial agreement to prove it. So get over yourself and fulfill your duty to me. Then you can go on about your sad little life, while I rise to the top and make my family proud,โ he boasts. โDid you ever love me?โ I ask. "Love is too strong of a word.โ He laughs out loud as if he has heard something ridiculous. โYou have good breeding, your parents assured me like you would be an obedient wife, and all along you've done well. Why don't you keep it up? Come home now, before I run out of patience." Heโs never loved me. His tone reminds me of the new racehorse he bought last month. A new, premium racehorse, presentable, brings him victories and can be bred to produce foals again. He never sees me as a wife, or even as a person. โNot a chance,โ I say proudly. โRemember your prenup? If you don't bear me children, you will be ruined. Your family will be in debt for the rest of their lives. Don't you dare try to leave me.โ His pupils dilate like that of a wild animal's, and he chokes me with his hand. I can barely breathe, I can feel heโs serious about hurting me, this man I had loved is literally taking my breath away. โIโm leaving you, one way or anotherโฆ." With what strength I have left I try to remove his hand and finish the sentence with the last of my breath. My peripheral vision sees that people are already whispering and looking over at us, and some even take out their phones and start taking pictures of us. โHow are youโฆโ He growls, low and dangerous. He notices the look in the crowd's eyes, and I'm betting he wonโt dare make a scandal like domestic scandal in public if he wants to remain reputable. He stares at me with anger in his eyes. He then lets go and I can finally breathe heavily. I cough, calling his bluff. He finally breaks the stare and leaves in a huff. The look on his face is absolutely worth it. I may have to pay the consequences later. But for now, I feel free for the first time in my life. I will leave Carter, no matter the cost. Chapter 4: Read your contract - This should be on my tombstone. I dug out my prenup from when papa told me not to worry about anything, that they would protect me and all I had to do was sign it, and so I did. But now, I realize that every conditioning of this prenup is working against me. My parents sold me into marriage, and theyโll be furious with me for getting a divorce. Theyโll be bankrupt and vulnerable to attacks without Carterโs protection. โIf you want a divorce, you wonโt get a penny from me. You will no longer be under my protection. Think twice, Hazel.โ Those are Carter's words, which are burned in my memory. I just wanna brush off the agreement and his threat by not thinking too much about them. But then, they start to haunt me, making me understand the realness of it all. Escaping isnโt a possibility, and Carter proves thatโฆ The rain pours as I stand on the doorstep of my rented house, the water mingles with the tears I try so hard to hold back. โYour husband's men took your car. I was about to tell you while theyโre here so you can talk to them about it, but theyโre so aggressive and I got scared that they may hurt me,โ my landlord says. A rush of anger and helplessness courses through me as I stare at the empty space of the parking lot where I last left my car. As if thatโs not enough for Carter, he adds another unwanted surprise for me. โAlso,โ the landlord begins, pity and fear etched across her wrinkled face. "Your husband called through the cellphone of one of his men. He threatened me, said he'd ruin my business if I don't evict you. So.., I can't keep the house rented to you anymore.โ The world seems to tilt, the ground shifting beneath my feet. "B-but, I have nowhere to go. Besides, I need time to find a new place." The landlord shakes her head, her face stern. "I can't risk it. The young Whitlock has too much influence. I can't afford to be caught in whatever marital problem you have." I wanna protest again, but sheโs right. Carter may put her in a difficult situation like heโs doing to me now, and I donโt wanna be the reason for it. With a heavy heart, I pack my things, and drag myself and my suitcase out into the storm. I then head to the nearest hotel. Without cash, I rely on my credit cards. The clerk at the front desk shakes his head as he hands back my credit card to me. "I'm sorry, Mrs. Whitlock. Your card has been declined." My cheeks burn with shame. "Can you try again, please?" The clerk tries again,... and beep! Declined, again! Maybe this hotelโs POS machine isnโt working - at least thatโs what I wanna believe in, though deep down, my inkling is telling me something else. I walk to another hotel, and approach the front desk, my hands shaking as I present my credit card. "I need a room, please," I say, trying to keep my voice steady. To my surprise, without even taking my credit card, the clerk shakes her head. "I'm sorry, Mrs. Whitlock. We can't help you." โWhy?โ I ask with a little frustration. The manager, who looks uncomfortable, comes to the clerkโs rescue, and answers, โMr. Carter Whitlock has banned you from our hotel." Youโve got to be kidding me? Where would I go now? Thereโs no refuge for me now. Carterโs reach is far and his influence powerful, making sure Iโm isolated, vulnerable. Heโs trying to force me back, cutting me off financially, stripping away my options. Soon I will be in debt and poor, which isnโt good, especially that Iโm now going to be a mother. I have to find a way out of this, and the only temporary solution I can think of is to pawn my pearls and earrings for some cash. I quickly head to a pawnshop, and its owner eyes me as I lay my jewelry on the counter. "I need to cash these," I say. He picks up the pearls, turning them over in his hands, his eyes narrowing as he glances at my suitcase. "You left home?โ โY-yes, and itโs hard to find a place to stay. My credit cards have been declining, so I need cash.โ The owner smirks as he says, โNice pieces, but I can't give you much for them. Market's down, you see." My heart sinks. I know heโs lying, taking advantage of my desperation. But what choice do I have - haggling? Then what? Get another rejection? I donโt wanna face with that. "How much?" I ask, bracing myself. He names a figure thatโs insultingly low, but I nod, swallowing my pride and the bitter taste of defeat. "I'll take it." At least I have money that'll last for a few days if I spend it wisely. Thatโs what matters for now. He counts out the bills with deliberate slowness while his eyes on me, a predator sensing vulnerability. When he finally hands over the money, I grab it. But I have to stay in the lobby for a moment, waiting for the rain to stop. Suddenly, my eyes flicker on the TV thatโs currently showing a flash news with a caption; โThe Divorce of the Centuryโ. The wife, once vilified by the town, now stood vindicated by Marius Thorne, the town's most revered lawyer. โMarius Thorne,โ I echo. Marius Thorneโs image flashes on the screen, a vision of confidence and success. His gold eyes, piercing, enchanting even. According to the news, he's a partner at the biggest law firm in town and he never loses in court. โHe may be who I need,โ I murmur to myself, excitement surging within me. Once the rain stops, I begin searching for a new place to stay. With newfound determination and what little cash I have, I find refuge in a cramped flat that doesn't check documents. The landlord, a cold and distant old lady, lays down the rules; no pets allowed, no men allowed, before disappearing from my sight. In this tiny room, my troubled heart finally quiets down. For now, Iโm safe, hidden from Carter's relentless pursuit. Through G****e, I search the name โMarius Thorneโ, and quickly call the numbers on the law firm profile heโs working with. After a few rings, a female voice echoes from the other end of the line. -[โCounsel Commanders Law Firm, how can we help you?โ]- โHi! Iโm filing for divorce and I need to make an appointment with Marius Thorne, is he available to speak with?โ Chapter 5: Divorce is never as easy as I thought it would be. -[โIโm calling to inform you that Mr. Thorne has decided to NOT take your case. We can recommend good divorce lawyers if neededโฆ.โ]- The womanโs tone is cool and reserved over the phone. Confusion clouds my thoughts, and questions race through my mindโwhy would he turn me away? Is he busy? Or does he find my case not worthy of his time? I quickly rush to the law firm, hoping to personally meet and talk to Marius Throne, but Iโm told by his secretary that appointments with Marius Throne are currently lined up for a month from now. So, heโs busy. Even so,... Iโm still hoping that heโll have a change of heart and accept my divorce case if only he can understand my situation. Itโs a good case, hard case to be exact - my prenup agreement is harsh and my husband was caught cheating red-handed. This may pique his interest. The bustling lobby seems to shrink in an instant as I, lost in my thoughts, collide with someone in a sharp, tailored suit. I stumble back, instinctively apologizing. "Oh, I'm so sor-!" But when the man speaks, I freeze mid-apology. "Hazel?" he says, his voice a mix of surprise and recognition. My brow furrows as I stare at him, trying to place the familiar handsome face. Then, it hits me. "Leslie?!" I exclaim, my confusion giving way to excitement. "It's nice to see you again!" Leslie returns my smile, his eyes lighting up with warmth. "It's nice to see you again too." My mind trips me back to our high school days, the laughter, the secrets shared, which were overshadowed by the years of silence that followed my marriage to Carter. "Itโs been a long time,โ I say. โWhat are you doing in a place like this?" A proud smile tugs at Leslie's lips as he proudly gestures around the lobby. "I work here as a Senior Legal Associate." Senior Legal Associate? - I echo inwardly with awe. Quickly, a glimmer of possibility shines through my uncertainty! And when Leslie asks the question back to me, I know I have to seize the opportunity. โHow about you, what are you doing here?โ In a heartbeat, I reply, "I'm divorcing my husband, and I need to talk to Attorney Thorne now. His secretary said he has many cases lined up for him. But heโs my only hope. Can you help me meet him, please?" As I wait for his response, I look into his eyes, praying for a lifeline. โMr. Thorne is a troublesome boss, difficult to work with, and even harder to persuade,โ he says. My stubbornness refuses to let doubt cloud my determination. Iโm desperate. Despite the warning signs, I press on, my resolve unshaken. "Just let me talk to him. Then I'll decide whether I still want to trust my case to him or not... please?" Leslie's smile turns brittle. "Alright. I'll try to talk to him first about you. Follow me." I follow Leslie, then wait outside one of the doors that are lining the corridor as I watch him disappear into the room. I hope Leslie's charm will be enough to sway Marius Thorne, to at least grant me a chance to plead my case. And maybe, just maybe, if I can make him understand, I can turn the tide in my favor. After a moment of agony, Leslie finally emerges from the room, his smile radiant as he meets my eager gaze. โYou may now go in,โ he announces, his voice tinged with excitement. My heart leaps with anticipation, and I can't help but squeal with delight. With a grin, I say, โThank you so, so much!โ I waste no time in crossing the threshold into the room. As I close the door, my eyes quickly fall upon Marius Thorne behind the mahogany desk. Heโs tall and heโs impeccably handsome too, more so than Leslie and even Carter himself. Clad in a printed suit, he exudes an air of impassiveness that sends chills down my spine. His jawline is sharp, his gold eyes are more piercing in person than they were on TV, and his dark hair perfectly groomed. Mariusโ voice is devoid of emotion just like his expression. "My secretary and Leslie told me that youโre planning to divorce your husband, Carter of the Whitlock Family.โ Surprised, I ask, "You know my husband?" Is Marius Thorne turning me off because of my husband? He dodges my question, and delivers his verdict instead. "I have a full schedule for the rest of the year to take on new cases. I can recommend good divorce lawyers to you If you need..." Disappointment and frustration foam in my heart, my hands clenching to my sides. "Is there anything I can do to change your mind?" Marius remains unmoved. Without a tiny hint of second-thought, he crashes me with a one-word answer, โNone.โ Pride becomes my shield from rejection. Iโve walked away from anyone where Iโm unwanted. I did that from Carter and his family, from my parents, God, I can just walk away from this stranger too! With a forced smile, I turn to the door. But just as I reach the threshold, a hand grips my wrist with unexpected force. Then, Carter's angry face looms over me. I struggle to maintain my balance. "Carter, let go of me!" I demand, my voice trembling with fear and defiance. โWhat do you think youโre doing here?!โ he asks back, his face red with beasty fury. Carter drags me aggressively. I try to get rid of him, shoving my wrist from his iron grip, but his strength is overpowering. Finally, we reach the lobby, where curious eyes watch our confrontation unfold. Carter releases my wrist, but my humiliation doesn't end there. In a voice sharp and cold, he unleashes a torrent of threats that makes my blood run cold. "I own half of this law firm. When my wife came to my firm looking for a divorce lawyer, You think I wouldn't notice that?โโ" My eyes widen in surpriseโฆ thatโs news to me. Carter pinches my hand and says, โYou didn't really think that you could find a lawyer who would dare take you on, did you?โ My mind goes blank, could this be the reason why Marius Thorne kept refusing me? Is there any other divorce attorney in town who will take my case? Whoโs not scared of Carter? Carter grabs my arm once again. โStop defying me! You canโt just waltz out of our marriage without consequences. Didnโt I already make sure you know that? The hardship youโre going through now is just the tip of the iceberg of what else I can do to you." I try to let go myself, but itโs no use, Carter is much stronger than I am. He then tightens his grip on me, which prompts me to hiss in pain. โCarter, please,โ I beg. Carter parts his lips, but before he can continue his tirade, a pair of hands intervenes, grasping both my arm and his. I look up, and see Marius standing before us. | LEARN_MORE | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&u | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | redtgb.com | VIDEO | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/453179940_1975169659583049_5683424097736557035_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=107&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=fkADcgCgiDMQ7kNvgHGG0j_&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AzQIGBqBqGaAdlxnpup3QFn&oh=00_AYD0wK9rEkOS7YPlwOUe6Xe_1YnJ5hGXjvL5S8t-exT69A&oe=673003DF | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,545 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 |
|
๐ฅ๐ฅClick to read the next chapter for free๐ | Two years of marriage, and I'd never set foot in my husband Elijah's office. Today was the first time I went to his company. After all this time, why was I suddenly entrusted to deliver these important documents? Could it be possible that theyโre finally learning to accept me? Taking a deep breath, I gently placed my hand on my stomach. The emptiness from losing my baby lingered, even though it had been a long time since that accident. I still felt lost and fragile, wishing for solace that never came. I missed my husband's presence, longing for a comforting word or touch. But he and his family remained distant and uninvolved, leaving me to recover on my own. Now, I was about to step into Elijahโs world โ his beloved company. My heart skipped a beat as I entered Elijah's large, elegant office. The room was tastefully decorated, with rich mahogany furniture and a large sign that said Sinclair Realty Group. But what made me stop in my tracks was the sight of my husband huddled with an attractive blonde over some papers. Their shoulders were touching, their cheeks almost brushing against each other. What is going on? I thought in alarm. Suddenly, the woman whispered something in Elijahโs ear while she gently laid her perfectly manicured hands on his arm. My heart jumped. I heard a loud thud on the floor and realized Iโd dropped the folder I was holding. They both looked up, startled. And thatโs when my gaze locked with that of the woman. I felt a shudder creeping through my skin. Serena Foster! She used to be a classmate of ours at Fairview University. She also happened to be Elijahโs ex-girlfriend. The realization hit me like a ton of bricks. So this is why my evil mother-in-law asked me to deliver this document! Morgana had probably known that Serena was here now. My husband rose from his chair, abruptly pulling away from Serena who was throwing me daggers with her eyes. โYou remember Serena, right? She works here now.โ I nodded, my heart leaping into my throat and my thoughts raging in a storm. Theyโre just colleagues, nothing else, I thought, but not with full conviction. Elijah wouldnโt cheat on me, would he? All this time, Iโd remained hopeful that he could still fall in love with me. But now, with Serena in the picture, time might just be running out for us. โSo why are you here?โ Elijah asked, a frown creasing his brow. โYour mom asked me to deliver this,โ I explained, hastily picking up the folder and handing it to him. Then narrowing my eyes at Serena, I waited for him to explain why they were working closely, or to at least introduce me as his wife. But much to my dismay, he didnโt. It felt as though my heart was being squeezed tightly, as it dawned on me that heโd never really introduced me to anyone as his wife. Ever. โSophia, you look shaken up. Didnโt you know Elijah hired me to work here?โ Her voice dripped with sarcasm. โApparently, we make a great team. Funny, I donโt recall seeing you here before.โ She was purposely rubbing it in my face, and I wanted to slap that smile away from her face. She then added, โOh, right, you donโt know anything about business. You might just mess things up.โ โI take care of our home,โ I said bitterly, looking down on the floor for a bit. I felt belittled, and my husband couldnโt even defend me. Serena looked at me with disbelief and laughed. Just then, Elijah said, โNext time, Sophia, just contact me and Iโll have my assistant come over.โ "Fine," I murmured, my voice barely audible, wishing the ground would swallow me up. The weight of hurt and embarrassment pressed down on me, crushing my spirit. My heart thudded as I blinked back tears. He doesn't want me here. Suddenly, Elijahโs secretary came in. โAlice, please prepare coffee for the ladies,โ he instructed. โJust black for Serena. No sugar.โ Serenaโs eyes lit up. โHey, you remembered!โ she exclaimed, obviously delighted. Elijah nodded at her. โOf course.โ I watched the exchange with a sinking feeling in my heart. Serena gave me a smug look as if she was reveling in some secret victory. I couldnโt help but feel more depressed. Here was my husband, effortlessly remembering Serena's coffee preferences, yet he couldn't recall something as simple as my allergy to caffeine. โJoin us, Sophia,โ Serena invited with a devilish grin. โJust like how we used to hang out together in college.โ I struggled to contain my emotions, not wanting to break down in front of them. โI have to go,โ I managed to say, my voice slightly cracking. โIโll see you at home.โ Elijahโs expression remained unchanged, and my heart felt heavy with the realization of how little I meant to him. The way he treated me had only gotten worse after losing my baby. What did you expect? a small voice hissed in my head. He only married you because he got you to have a baby. Youโre the one who keeps hoping heโll eventually fall for you. As his assistant Connor Hayes drove me home, I thought about how my husbandโs mother Morgana had begun ignoring me after I lost the baby. Then one day, she started talking to me again, only to treat me like a housemaid. I fought back tears as the heaviness in my heart escalated. My marriage was falling apart so fast that I couldnโt seem to catch up. When we pulled up the spacious driveway of the Sinclair mansion, a feeling of dread and loneliness engulfed me. Iโm back in this prison. Trapped. Helpless. I want to escape this prison! I screamed in my head, glad that Morgana was nowhere to be found. Yet. Running to my room and throwing myself on my bed, sobs wracked my body. And as I cried my eyes out, I felt something with my hand that made me sit up. A small portion of a brown envelope was peeking from under the pillow. My heart tightened, and more tears filled my eyes. I knew exactly what it contained โ the papers Iโd prepared before. I pulled them out and stared at the title that blurred before my teary eyes. It read: Divorce Agreement. CHAPTER 2 The divorce agreement was written after I accidentally lost my baby. During that time, I couldnโt even look at Elijahโs face without thinking about our baby. The pain was unbearable, so I believed divorce was my salvation. Looking back, preparing the divorce agreement was not a mistake, now that leaving was my only option. My hands shook as I held the papers in my hand. I could hear Morganaโs voice outside. โSophia!โ she called in a sharp tone. She probably heard me come in and was now wondering where I was. Quickly, I hid the divorce agreement and washed my face in the bathroom. Thatโs when the door swung open. I dried my face with a towel and looked at my mother-in-law. She responded with a cold gaze. She immediately instructed me to do the housework, her tone full of disdain. As I began my chores, she stood there taunting me. โElijah told me not to ask you to deliver things in the future,โ she said with a scoff. โYou canโt even be relied on for such a simple task.โ Her words cut deep. โWhen you first came to our house carrying a baby in your belly, it was okay that you couldn't do anything,โ she continued. โThen you had lost your baby and you had to spend months recovering and regaining your health. Now you can't even deliver a document, so what's the meaning for Elijah of having you as a wife?" Her words were like daggers, each one piercing my heart. And then, in a cruel twist, she added, โMy son would be better off with Serena. She's prettier, smarter, and she even managed to land a job at his company! Unlike you... You can't even perform simple housework that well.โ Sure enough, she already knew that Serena worked at Elijah's company. She asked me to deliver the papers today just to make a fool of me. The room felt suffocating, the burden of her words pressing down on me. I felt utterly alone, realizing that no one had ever been on my side. I clenched my fists, struggling against the wave of tears threatening to spill. Sweeping the floor became a mechanical task, a facade to hide my turmoil. The repeated humiliations and frustrations drained me of the energy to fight back or explain myself yet again. I donโt deserve this, I thought sourly. Itโs time for me to escape, to save myself. With bitter tears streaming down my cheeks, I rushed to my room and grabbed the papers Iโd hidden. Staring at me from the front page were the words: Divorce Agreement. Iโve had enough. Flashbacks of how Elijah and Morgana had been treating me filled my mind. Despite my efforts to be the dutiful wife and daughter-in-law, Iโd always seemed invisible to them. Iโve been obedient, helpful, and hardworkingโฆ But no one cares. Not even my own husband. Iโm nothing to him. He doesnโt love me and he never learned to. Thatโs the most painful of all. My heart tightened. His indifference cut deeper than any overt cruelty could. And now, with Serena back in the picture, their attention gravitated toward her. I felt more isolated than ever. This is the last straw! I must get out of here, or Iโll lose my sanity! That evening, I hadnโt realized Iโd already fallen asleep when I heard the bedroom door open. Something made a loud, clattering noise. I quickly sat up and saw Elijah staggering toward me. He mumbled something about a dinner party as he plopped on the bed and started sliding his fingers down my bare arm. I hastily moved backward, giving him a look of disbelief. He was obviously drunk. If he wasnโt, he would have just ignored me and gone straight to bed. โHey, playing hard to get, arenโt you?โ he said in a slurred manner, his bloodshot eyes becoming more intense. Then without warning, he leaned forward and kissed me on the lips. I didnโt have time to react, though, because he suddenly started unbuttoning my oversized nightshirt. โWhen did Serena start working at your company?โ I asked him coldly. He shrugged, but didnโt stop what he was doing. โNot sure. Probably recruited by HR.โ His lips traveled down and then his tongue followed. Finally, the last button on my sleep pajama surrendered. โSerena is such a talented addition to our team,โ he remarked with admiration. As I reminisced about the scene I witnessed at the company, my husband and his ex-girlfriend Serena were closely nestled together, sharing laughter and conversation. But I couldn't muster the courage to confront her and ask her to keep her distance from him. Jealousy and pain gripped my chest. I couldnโt believe he was saying all this while undressing me! I knew then that he still had feelings for her. โYou know,โ he said, oblivious to my disappointment, โshe's even outperforming many of the senior colleagues who've been with the company for years.โ Even as we locked eyes, there was something in his gazeโa kind of infatuationโthat he never seemed to exhibit when it came to me. Heโs probably picturing me as her! I thought with disgust. I was so disappointed in him, and didnโt want him anywhere near me. But when I pulled away, he threw me an irritated look. โWhatโs wrong with you?โ he asked, taken aback that I was saying no to his advances unlike before. I didnโt answer. He narrowed his eyes at me. โYouโve been down in the dumps for months now! I thought youโd snap out of it, but youโve only gotten worse. Itโs depressing to even see you.โ I cringed at his words, the searing pain crushing my heart. He couldnโt even see how my spirit was being shattered because of him. โMaybe itโs because of the baby we lostโฆโ he mused. Sliding his fingers down the surface of my cheek and then my neck, he added in a drunken slur, โWhy donโt we just make another baby?โ I couldnโt believe my ears. I knew that whenever he was drunk, he spoke without inhibitions. He was often brutally honest in this state. Hence, he meant every word and that only showed how much he didnโt understand me or the problem we had in this marriage. My whole body was shaking as the misery and fury Iโve been keeping inside rose to the surface. He doesnโt get it. Or maybe he just doesnโt care. I was totally pissed off. And thatโs when I blurted it out. โI want to divorce you.โ CHAPTER 3 I could sense his mind reeling from the unexpected news. He opened his mouth as if to say something. I expected him to respond, to react, to ask questions. Anything at all! But he never said anything. My heart thumped hard as we gazed at one another โ strangers whoโd been forced to live together. I had tried so hard to make this marriage work even after we had lost the baby. But it takes two to succeed at this, I realized. โI want a divorce,โ I repeated, keeping my voice steady. โIโm serious.โ Slowly he nodded. โYes, sure,โ he answered before getting up and disappearing into the bathroom. My heart felt like it was about to explode. I pulled my open shirt around me, desperately covering myself up, as I coiled into a fetal position with my head throbbing. A tear dropped down my cheek, and I quickly brushed it away. This is it. Iโm going to be free. And yet somehow, I didnโt feel that ecstatic. His reaction only confirmed my worst suspicions. Now I know the truth โ he never loved me at all. Heโs not even upset about the divorce! I sighed. Itโs time for me to move on. The next day, after eating breakfast on my own, I mustered up all my courage and called Elijah to the study. โWe should sign this,โ I said without any emotion, showing him the divorce papers. He sat on the sofa across from me, looking at me quietly. His gaze always made me feel a little nervous, but today was different. I signed the papers and urged him to do the same. โElijah, please,โ I whispered, making sure my voice wouldnโt break. โLet's end this.โ His face contorted in a horrible expression as he ruthlessly grabbed the agreement from me. But he didnโt sign immediately. He took a long time going over each page while I waited impatiently. Then his phone suddenly rang. I saw it light up with Serenaโs name, making my heart tighten. I canโt believe this womanโs timing! But Elijah only glanced at it before returning to reviewing the papers. Perhaps he didnโt want to answer it because I was in the room with him. A myriad of emotions threatened to engulf me. I stood up and positioned myself in front of him with my arms crossed against my heart. โWhy donโt you just hurry up and sign those so you can get going? Someone might be waiting for you in the office.โ He glanced at me warily, then took out his pen and signed everything. With an angry grunt, he threw the papers down on the sofa and stormed out of the room. Watching him go, I was filled with overwhelming feelings โ relief, frustration, anger, sadness. โIโm finally free,โ I murmured to myself incredulously. While I was packing my bags in the bedroom, Morgana suddenly charged inside. In her usual bossy voice, she said, โThe morningโs almost over, Sophia! Go do the laundry now.โ With a sarcastic huff, I turned around to face her. โSorry, but Elijah and I just signed a divorce agreement. I will no longer do any housework for you.โ Her face reddened in anger. I could almost see steam coming out of her ears as she crossed her arms on her pit and scolded me angrily. "You married into our family for two years, no children, and now you want a divorce," she spat out bitterly. I scoffed, not bothering to respond. It doesnโt matter anymore. I can finally ignore her completely! But then, almost as quickly as her anger had surfaced, her mood changed. โYou know what? It's actually quite nice,โ she said, her tone almost mocking. โElijah can finally marry someone better, like Serina. Every single day that I see you hanging your head in despair, it just makes my blood boil. Anyone would make a better wife than you!โ Her words infuriated me. I wanted to slap away that haughty look on her face, but it would just be a waste of energy. Iโm done here. Iโm done with all this. Suddenly, memories flooded back of a time when Morgana had shown kindness, especially during my pregnancy with her grandchild. She had been caring and considerate. However, after I lost my baby, her demeanor changed drastically. She began treating me like a mere servant rather than a member of the family. I could never understand why she became so hostile all of a sudden. Sometimes I wondered if it had more to do with herself than with me. That afternoon, I went home to where I grew up. As I settled in, I felt relieved that at least I had a place I could call my own. โLuckily I hadnโt sold it,โ I muttered, looking around the living room and remembering my adoptive father. This house is the only connection I have left with him. Night swept in quickly. I was worn out and exhausted. Climbing onto my old bed, I was ready to relax when I received a message from my best friend Kayla. It showed a secretly taken photo of Elijah and Serena in a club, sitting intimately close and laughing together. A chill ran down my spine as I read the angry message from Kayla: That Elijah! You have no idea what I saw! Elijah was out partying and flirting with that Serena, which he never did with you! My heart sank, anger and sadness clouded my mind as I realized he was indeed getting back together with Serena and flaunting her around. Forcing back my tears, I told Kayla: Itโs over between me and Elijah. We were divorced. CHAPTER 4 โAaarrgghh! I so hate that guy for doing this to you!โ Kayla hissed. โIf I had known heโd treat you like that, I wouldnโt have allowed you to even come near him during our grad celebration! And I wouldnโt have kept pushing you to hook up with him, no matter how gorgeous he was!โ Being the daughter of Raven Mediaโs renowned CEO, Kayla Davis always hung out with high society. She saw Elijah a lot at parties since they belonged to the same circle. We also all happened to attend Fairview University where Kayla and I had majored in Interior Design. Hence, she not only knew Elijah but Serena too. โYou should have seen them at the party last night!โ she cried out, causing some people to give us a dirty look. Lowering her voice, she leaned forward with a repulsed look. โThey didnโt even care that I was there! They were justโฆ Aaahhh! I really couldnโt take it, so I went over there and gave them a piece of my mind. I told them they ought to be ashamed of themselves!โ โOh, wow,โ I uttered in disbelief. โBut itโs over now, Kayla. Iโm doing my best to move on.โ Kayla was still fuming. But then, she eventually smiled and leaned over to squeeze my hands. โIโm always here for you, Sophia. You know that.โ โThanks so much. Iโm really grateful to have someone who really cares about me,โ I responded with a fluttering heart. โWell, youโve always had my back even in high school. So now itโs my turn to return the favor.โ Kayla and I became best friends during our freshman year in high school. We came to know each other well when we first worked on an art project together. Weโd hit it off at once, and the rest was history. โAnyway, I can see that Elijah never loved you and he doesnโt deserve you, Sophia,โ she went on. โSo what are you planning now?โ โWell, Iโve been giving it some thoughtโฆโ I began, suddenly feeling excited for the future. โA few weeks ago, I applied for this postgraduate program at Goldwell Institute of Art in Franceโโ โYou did not!โ she interrupted me, her lips turning up into a huge grin. Suddenly, she jumped up from her seat and gave me a hug. โThis will surely be your big break!โ I laughed. โI havenโt been accepted yet, you know.โ โOh, but you will be!โ Kaylaโs enthusiasm was so contagious that I could already picture myself studying there, exploring France, and enjoying myself. But then, my mood suddenly changed again when I heard my phone ringing and saw Elijahโs name popping up on the screen. I froze up. Kaylaโs eyes narrowed when she saw it too. โGo ahead and answer it. See what he has to say.โ As soon as I accepted the call, I heard Elijahโs sharp tone of voice on the other end. โYou filed for our divorce, and now your family wants cash from me?! Unbelievable!โ โWait, what do you mean?โ โYou know Iโm busy in the office, then here comes your brother with another excuse for needing financial help! He had the nerve to barge into the conference room and disrupt our meeting!โ Elijah railed angrily. I felt mortified and helpless. โIโll talk to Troy.โ โGood. Make sure he doesnโt come back again ever.โ Then he hung up. I was so shocked that I couldnโt speak for a while. My family's constant demands for cash had reached a tipping point. No matter how many times I tried to set boundaries, they continued to use me and interrupt Elijah. It felt like I had no control over the situation, and it was greatly upsetting. โSorry I have to go now, Kayla,โ I said, bravely deciding to act immediately. She nodded in understanding and we said goodbye. I immediately rushed to the house where my adoptive mother and brother had moved to after my adoptive father Tom Bennett passed away. Heโd left me the original house where heโd taken care of me like his real own child. But the rest of the inheritance had been taken by his wife and son. Theyโd bought a bigger house and I never heard from them again. Not until they learned of my marrying a wealthy man in the famous Sinclair clan. Brenda was certainly not pleased to hear what I had to say. โWhat did you say?! You divorced Elijah, the billionaire CEO of Sinclair Realty Group?!! Are you out of your mind?!!โ Behind her, my brother Troy looked as if he wanted to punch the wall. โIt was never going to work out,โ I said, trying to maintain my composure. โJust please stop bothering him. Weโve cut our ties. You canโt ask for anything from him anymore.โ โOh, man!โ Troy exclaimed with frustration. Two years ago, after I married Elijah, Brenda and Troy came back and pretended like we were a tight-knit family. At first, Elijah was kind and understanding of their needs. But when he noticed how abusive they had become, always asking for financial support, he became impatient and angry. One time, they even borrowed cash in my name and never paid it back. It had become one of the reasons why Morgana was so angry with me. โDid you fight? Maybe you can still fix it!โ Brenda said, looking desperate. Troy scoffed. โWhen I went to his office, I saw him talking to this beautiful, sexy blonde. Iโm guessing thereโs a third party involved! People who donโt know better would think that woman is his wife!โ CHAPTER 5 My heart felt like it would explode any time now. โIt doesnโt matter,โ I eventually said to Troy. โItโs none of my business now. I donโt care what he does with that woman or with whomever.โ Then staring hard at him and my foster mother, I said sharply, โWeโre definitely not getting back together, so the two of you should just stop going to him for anything! Just stop!โ โButโฆโ Brenda began to protest. I raised my hand to stop her. โElijah and I are over. Besides, Iโll soon move to France and study there. And since you only contacted me again because of Elijahโs wealth, then now you wonโt have any more need for me, right?โ They were both shocked at my words because I had never spoken like that in the past. But it was time for me to step up and put myself first for once. โAll thing that you swindled out of my ex-husbandโs pocket, consider it as your payment for raising me,โ I went on in a steady voice. โWe donโt have to see or talk to each other ever again.โ On the way home, I began to feel a migraine coming. I closed my eyes and massaged my temples as I sat in the back seat of a cab. All of this dramaโs taking a toll on me, I guess. But as I neared the house, I felt increasingly queasy and unwell. I realized my health hadnโt fully recovered since the loss. โCould you please take me to the hospital?โ I asked the driver, trying to keep my voice steady despite the rising nausea. He nodded and quickly changed course, navigating toward the nearest medical facility. The ride felt endless, each bump in the road exacerbating my discomfort. By the time we arrived, I could barely contain the churning in my stomach. I burst through the hospital doors, a wave of dizziness threatening to overwhelm me. My vision blurred, and I stumbled forward, nearly colliding with a figure in front of me. Before I could hit the ground, strong hands gripped my arms, steadying me. Gasping for breath, I looked up and found myself staring into the concerned eyes of a very handsome and familiar-looking man. โAre you okay? You look like you're about to faint,โ he said, his brows furrowed with worry. With our eyes locked on each other, before I could even reply, a look of recognition crossed his features. โOh, wait! Itโs you. Sophia Bennett from Green Valley High, right?โ I was surprised, looking at him closely. His features reminded me of someone I knew a long way back. โUh, Daniel?โ I eventually said, recalling his name. We had gone to the same high school, but he was a year older than me. โYes, yes. Wait, let me bring you to our family doctor. You look really pale.โ I felt too sick to pretend I was fine, so I just let him lead me through the corridor and into one of the clinics. He quickly introduced me to the doctor whom he seemed to know well. As the doctor greeted me, concern etched across his face, I explained how I'd been feeling. He listened attentively, nodding as I spoke. After a brief discussion, he led me to an examination room, asking Daniel to wait outside. The examination was thorough, and I appreciated the doctor's calming demeanor. Afterward, he suggested some basic tests to determine the cause of my symptoms. โHow are you feeling now?โ Daniel asked kindly once I sat down beside him in the waiting area. โA little better, but still kinda dizzy,โ I answered honestly. โThanks for the assistance, but itโs okay if you have somewhere to be. Youโve already done too much for me.โ โOh, itโs okay,โ he said with a smile. โUnless you donโt want me here.โ โItโs nothing like that, of course!โ I quickly replied. โThanks for accompanying me. It feels good to have someone to talk to while Iโm here.โ โWell, Iโm all ears. People say Iโm a good listener.โ I beamed at him, his presence a comforting anchor in the sterile hospital environment. Chuckling, I said, โI donโt really know you, Danielโฆโ โYou know my name. Thatโs a start.โ His grin seemed to brighten up the surroundings, and I just felt immediately comfortable with him. I couldn't help but feel a sense of familiarity and trust wash over me. We hadn't been close in high school, but something about his calm demeanor and genuine concern made me want to open up. โI rememberโฆ Daniel Pierceโฆโ I began, smiling. I could feel my headache and nausea diminishing. โHigh school jock, but a bit geeky and always at the top of the class.โ He laughed. โYouโve got a good memory, Sophia Bennett. I remember you too โ the smart, quiet, very talented artist whom all the boys noticed but never had the nerve to approach.โ I laughed too at his astonishing description of me. โYouโre joking!โ โNo, itโs trueโฆ Really! Iโm sure youโve managed to get yourself a very good-looking husband. Let me guess, a CEO?โ He was kidding, but hitting close to home made me frown as I remembered Elijah. โGood-looking, yes. CEO, yes. But husband? Not anymore.โ โOh.โ His expression changed immediately. โIโm sorry to hear that.โ โYou know, it's been a rough few months,โ I began tentatively, twiddling my thumbs in my lap. โI'm actually going through a divorce, and my family... they keep asking for cash from my ex-husband, which just complicates things even more.โ Daniel's expression shifted to one of empathy, and he nodded, encouraging me to continue. โAnd then I lost my baby...It's been tough, physically and emotionally. I just feel like I'm carrying the weight of the world on my shoulders, you know?โ He nodded in understanding. โIโm so sorry to hear all that, Sophia. But you seem like a really strong woman. Iโm sure you can get back on your feet in no time. Usually, it helps to be in a change of environment. Have you considered that?โ โYeah, starting anew in a foreign land,โ I answered, thinking about my application in France. โHmmโฆ sounds like a pretty bold move," Daniel remarked, his eyes reflecting admiration and amusement at the same time. โIt takes courage to make such a big change.โ I smiled weakly. โActually, I've applied for graduate studies in France. It's something I've always wanted to do.โ Daniel's eyebrows shot up in surprise. โReally? That's incredible! I recently got accepted at the Goldwell Business School in Parisโฆโ My jaw dropped. โWhat? Iโm planning to go to the Goldwell Institute of Art!โ He looked at me with astonishment. โWhat are the odds, huh? Looks like weโll be seeing more of each other. Those institutions share practically the same campus.โ I couldn't believe the coincidence, though I was still feeling down. โThatโs reallyโฆ something else.โ โSurely youโll get in. Where do you plan to stay in Paris?โ โThe Latin Quarter, of course. Iโm looking at an apartment there, since itโs where most students live.โ Daniel chuckled. โAnd it looks like weโll be neighbors too. I think we were meant to cross paths again right now, right here.โ He gave me a lopsided grin. โWho knows? Maybe weโre destined to explore France together! When you book your plane ticket, let me know. Letโs fly together. I mean, if thatโs alright with you?โ His offer warmed my heart, and for the first time in a long while, I felt a glimmer of hope. โThank you, Danielโฆโ Suddenly, I heard my name being called by the assistant, motioning for me to come back into the clinic. โMiss Sophia Bennett?โ she informed me. โYour test results are here.โ CHAPTER 6 Daniel followed me into the doctor's office, providing support. The doctor smiled warmly at us, his expression giving nothing away. โWell, Sophia,โ he began, his tone measured, โthe results are in. Congratulations to you both.โ I felt a rush of confusion and disbelief. โYouโre going to be parents. Congratulations!โ the doctor added. Iโmโฆ pregnant?! How could that be? My last baby had left me only months ago. Even I just signed divorce papers with Elijah, and now I'm carrying his child? The room spun around me as embarrassment flooded my cheeks. Probably because he was mistaken for the baby's father, Daniel looked surprised but did not contradict the doctor. โOther than that, youโre perfectly healthy, Sophia,โ the doctor assured me. He went on to discuss some things with Daniel, but I hardly heard them talking. My heart pounded crazily, and my mind felt fuzzy. Once again, I felt like I was caught up in a weird dream. None of it was real. Daniel was quiet as we left the hospital. I didnโt know what to say either. โLet me drive you home, Sophia,โ he offered once we were outside. His eyes were filled with concern for me. I was just too tired and confused to say no, so I simply nodded. He did not ask any questions, and I was glad. What am I going to do? I asked myself in silence while in the car, feeling the panic rising in my throat. This is the worst timing ever. Elijah and I just got divorced, and Iโm supposed to have a whole new life ahead of me. Anxiety took over me. Everything was about to change again. If I have this baby, it wonโt have a father, I thought bitterly. And how can I take care of it on my own while living in a different country where I donโt have anyone to help me? My hand moved toward my tummy. There was no baby bump yet, but knowing that there was a little one growing inside gave me chills. Suddenly, I remembered how painful it had been to lose my baby before. This is a blessing, a second chance for me to become a mother. Would I want to risk losing another baby? Slowly I began to calm down. I took deep breaths until my head began to clear. This is a miracle, I told myself. I should be grateful. As I rubbed my belly, I spoke in my mind. Iโm so sorry, baby. Itโs just all too sudden. But I know that Iโm going to take care of you and love you with all my heart. Days flew by, bringing a welcomed calm without Elijah, Brenda, and Troy in the picture. However, internally, I remained in turmoil. Then, the news I had been eagerly awaiting arrivedโI had been accepted into my dream university to study art and design once more! Despite the uncertainty of juggling studies with a baby, I couldn't let this opportunity slip away. In just a weekโs time, I found myself waving goodbye to Kayla at the airport. โCall me when you get there!โ she said, her eyes gleaming with tears. It was the first time we would be apart for a long time, and we were like sisters. As I settled into my seat on the airplane, bound for Paris, excitement and nervousness mingled within me. The prospect of starting a new life in a different country threatened to overwhelm my senses. The plane began its ascent, lifting off the ground. I felt a wave of panic wash over me. Beside me, Daniel sensed my unease and reached over, gently squeezing my hand. โEverything will be okay,โ he reassured me. โI'm here. We'll do this together.โ His words were a comforting balm to my anxious soul, and I found great comfort in his presence. As we chatted throughout the plane ride, ate together, fell asleep, and then chatted some more, I began to relax and come to terms with the situation. I can do this, I thought with more confidence. Then touching my tummy, I silently whispered, Youโre my lucky charm, my baby. By the time we landed safely, Daniel and I were like old buddies. I was truly grateful that he was with me. As the cab wound through Paris, iconic landmarks flashed pastโthe Eiffel Tower dominating the skyline, the majestic Louvre in the distance, and quaint streets bustling with cafes and shops. Despite my worries, the beauty of the city had me momentarily elated, filling me with a sense of excitement and wonder. Beside me, Daniel seemed entranced, his eyes wide with wonder. Soon, we were unloading my bags at my new apartment. It was semi-furnished, and I was immediately drawn to the light blue walls and the inviting white sofa. But my favorite part of all was the large window that gave me a fantastic view of the busy city street below. This was itโthe start of my new life in Paris. I turned to Daniel, who was looking around the apartment with a satisfied smile. โLooks like you've got yourself a nice little place here,โ he remarked, glancing back at me. "Yeah, I think I'm going to like it here," I replied. Daniel chuckled. โJust remember to take it easy, okay? You've had a long journey.โ I rolled my eyes. โI'm fine, Daniel. I'm not going to keel over from exhaustion.โ He raised an eyebrow, and then grinned. โI'm just saying, youโll be too heavy for me to carry if you collapse!โ I threw the throw pillow at him jokingly. โOh, shut up.โ We both laughed. He added, โYou need to get some beauty sleep, Sophia. I'm sure you'll want to look your best when you meet your new classmates.โ โOh, so now you're concerned about my appearance?โ Daniel grinned. โHey, a little rest never hurt anyone. And who knows, maybe you'll meet a cute French guy who'll sweep you off your feet.โ I playfully nudged him. โI think I'll pass on that, thank you very much. I'm here to focus on my studies, not my love life.โ He appeared pleased with that statement. โFair enough,โ he answered with a teasing smile. โBut you never know what could happen. Paris is the city of love, after all.โ I felt a little flutter in my heart, wondering if I could learn to look at him as more than a friend. Perhaps it's more accurate to say he's akin to a brother rather than just a friend. The assistance he's provided far exceeds anything I've received from Elijah in years. Sighing, I went over to my bags. โCome on, just help me unpack already so we can check out your apartment next.โ As we were unpacking, my phone rang. I figured it was Kayla so I asked Daniel to answer it, showing him that my hands were full at the moment. โHello?โ I heard Daniel say. He put the call on speaker mode. โWho the hell is this? Where's Sophia?โ a very familiar male voice demanded, his tone aggressive and impatient. My heart felt like it had just plummeted to the ground. I felt my whole body trembling when Daniel handed the phone to me. I didn't have to hold the phone to my ear to hear Elijah's furious growling, "Sophia, YOU CAN'T just walk away like this! Where the hell are you now?! Without my permission, you are not allowed to go anywh...." I pressed the button to end the call without hearing his entire words, calming my quivering heart with a big and deep breath. It's true that Elijah has never been very considerate or tender with me, but he hasn't really stepped on me rudely either. It's just that lately, he's been indifferent to me. Anyway, he'd never been as emotionally cranky as he was now. Did my leaving make him care? No, don't be silly, Sophia, he can be with Serena again now. He's free. How do you expect that he would care about you, a woman he had never loved? Daniel noticed my paradoxical anxiety. "Who is he?" Daniel inquired. But I could see in his eyes that he clearly knew the answer to that question. I sighed, "My husband. No, ex-husband." | LEARN_MORE | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid= | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | thebvhwysgng.com | IMAGE | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=12887&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/458391687_1754417628715438_7252422995478922606_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=111&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=sCah6fv7IE0Q7kNvgEM89To&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=ABPwkCq691JLqdHhVoqj7W9&oh=00_AYAFB8mPvb53nkMaPslqhNA4szkGmCkal8lcMIN9eIQjBw&oe=67300026 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,549 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312542}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 | ๐Read the next chapters๐ | Chapter 1: PROLOGUE: Our three-year marriage is facing many challenges, and growing up as an orphan, who am I to expect anything better? My husband, Carter Whitlock, is everything Iโve ever dreamed of. Strong, kind, and fiercely devoted, heโs swept me off my feet from the moment we first met. In his arms, Iโve found solace and belonging. My mother-in-law, Elmyra, always has a disapproving gaze thatโs never far from my side. The other members of the Whitlock family, too, seem to regard me with suspicion and disdain, as if Iโm an interloper in their midst. I long to earn their acceptance, to prove myself worthy of their family name. Each day, I strive to be the perfect wife for Carter, tending to his needs with care and devotion. Yet no matter how hard I try, it seems as though I can never quite measure up to their expectations. Even so, a sense of determination always stirs within me. I wonโt be cowed by their judgment, nor wonโt I allow their harsh words to dim the light of my love for Carter. I'll be strong and unwavering in my resolve, and Iโll make my husband proud. ------ Hazelโs POV I have an unbelievable secret that I canโt wait to tell my husband. With our three year anniversary coming up, itโs about time we make our family complete. I hear the rumors being spread about me by his relatives; the whisper that Iโm barren. I look down at the little pink plus sign on the test and I smile. Itโs all going to change now. Carter will be so happy when I tell him. When I first met Carter at college, I had just stepped out of the campus coffee shop and a cyclist almost ran me over. Carter stepped in and grabbed me out of harmโs way. I instantly felt butterflies in my stomach. He has been my hero from the very beginning. He is the city's most famous bachelor. and an incredibly rich man. I never thought he would be interested in someone like me. I had nothing to give him. Because of that, I have always felt inferior to him in our marriage. Not everyone approved of the marriage from the beginning. The house staff is respectful, but I think itโs only because I am the mistress. Not because they think I deserve it. I see the judgment in their eyes when they look at me. Both my mother-in-law and sisters-in-law are constantly making comments about my appearance. They love to remind me that I represent the formidable Whitlock family. As if my looks and the way I dress will forever stain their familyโs image. I wasnโt even allowed to make any decisions on my own wedding. I tried to pick out the flowers and I was told my taste was โtoo simpleโ for a wedding to the most nobel family. I have also been told on several occasions that I should be โseen and not heardโ during family meetings. Nobody trusts my opinion, let alone asks for it. Carterโs mother, Elmyra, has always been distant and indifferent to me. She treats me like an outcast and every time she approaches me I get nervous. Her hair is always perfectly done up; her makeup and clothes flawless. She is an intimidating woman and she often makes me feel small. She knows exactly what to say to cut deeply too. โI suppose you are happy riding my sonโs coat tails the rest of your life? What purpose do you serve if you canโt give him an heir?โ โItโs probably for the best, dear. As an orphan, you wouldnโt know the first thing about being a mother anyway.โ โI donโt know what my son was thinking when he decided to marry you. You arenโt strong enough to be the lady of this family.โ But I know I can rely on Carter to protect me from her harsh words and actions when heโs around. He even defends me against his mother when she is hard on me. โI know you want to be a grandmother mom, but Hazel and I are happy. We will have a child when we are ready.โ Then he turns to me and kisses me on the forehead. I donโt know why Elmyra hates me so much. It makes me feel bad about myself, like I will never be good enough for her son. But, from now on, everything is going to change. Even Elmyra will have to start treating me better once she hears the news. I have a husband who adores me, a beautiful home and now, after years of trying, a new addition on the way to make our family complete. Me, an orphan, finally getting a real family to call her own. Just then Carter walks out of the bedroom looking as handsome as ever with his dark blonde hair, piercing blue eyes and chiseled jaw. โMorning, babe. Whatโs for breakfast?โ Carter asks as he strolls into the kitchen. He kisses me on the cheek and lightly squeezes my wrist as he walks past me to get his coffee. โEggs and bacon,โ I reply with a giggle. We eat our breakfast in companionable silence. I cherish every moment alone with my husband. I donโt care what his mother or his other relatives think. I just want his approval. The one person who has truly loved me and been there for me in my life. While Iโm standing at the sink washing dishes, I feel a presence behind me suddenly. Something cold and heavy is placed on my heart. I look down at the most beautiful diamond necklace Iโve ever seen. It has a big cushion cut stone in the center and smaller stones wrapping up the sides of the necklace. โCarter! What is this for?โ I ask breathlessly. โFor being so beautiful,โ he replies. He leads me over to a mirror on the wall and I gasp in surprise. โItโs stunning,โ I say in awe. โTonight Iโd like you to wear it to dinner with that short black dress I like. And, when we get back Iโd like you to wear only this,โ he says suggestively. โYes, sir,โ I say softly. I tip my head back to allow him access to my lips. He kisses me deeply and caresses my body and I lean into him. โI wish I could stay in bed all day with you, but this meeting is important,โ he moans and steps back. โI will be waiting for you,โ I say with a coy look. โWhat would I do without you? You are the love of my life,โ he replies. He gives me another quick kiss and then heโs headed towards the door. I sigh happily, thinking about how much Iโm going to miss him today. We had already planned on going out to dinner, but now it's going to be special. I will tell him Iโm with child tonight and surprise him. Out of the blue, my phone rings. I see that itโs my best friend, Lillian. Iโve been so focused on being the perfect wife for Carter that Iโve lost touch with many of my friends. But Lilian is different. She knows everything about Carter and me. She knows how my mother-in-law and the other family members treat me. She has always been there for me. She knows what to say to make me feel better about anything. -[โHi, Hazel. How are you?โ]- she asks. โIโm doing ok,โ I say. -[โYour voice doesnโt sound ok. Spill it.โ]- โItโs nothing, just had a visit from Elmyra.โ -[โYou really shouldnโt put up with her crap, Hazel. Talk to Carter about it, maybe he can get her to lay off.โ]- โI appreciate that but I think that will just make me look weak to her. Sheโs a complicated woman,โ I say. -[โSheโs a shrew,โ]- Lillianโs sarcasm makes me laugh. โSpeaking of which, I have to get ready for this afternoon tea so she doesnโt have my head. Talk later?โ I ask. -[โSo youโll be gone all afternoon?โ]- โYes, unfortunately. These ladies love to drone on about family traditions,โ I reply and then add, โWhy, do you need something?โ -[โNo, Iโm ok. I was going to ask you to lunch but another time. Iโm always here for you Hazel so if it gets too much give me a call.โ]- โThank you. You are such a great friend,โ I reply warmly. I hang up with Lillian and feel a pang of regret. Iโm going to make it a priority to dedicate more time to our friendship. My day is over quickly. The tea goes very well and I decide to head home early. Usually, Iโd follow the women back to Elmyra's house for dinner. I always want to be part of them. But this time, Iโm very tired. I walk into our apartment and set my bag on the counter. I hum to myself, excited about seeing Carter soon. I start to walk into the kitchen when I hear a noise. It sounds like a moan. I stop what Iโm doing instantly. Fear creeps up my spine. I make my way back towards the sound and I hear it again. Then I hear a bang noise and I almost jump out of my skin. My heart is pounding and my legs feel shaky. Something is wrong. I know it in my gut. I start to push the door open slowly and it makes a small creaking sound. What I see makes me gasp. A woman is grinding on top of Carter and heโs moaning. He grabs her groin and looks up at her adoringly. I feel like someone has just ripped my heart out. My breathing becomes erratic. I start to panic. My knees feel like jello. I clutch the door frame for support. How could he do this to me?! This man who said I was the love of his life just this morning! This man who gave me a beautiful necklace and told me he hated leaving me! Just then, the woman turns to me with an evil grin. Like sheโs enjoying making me watch in horror. I canโt believe my own eyes. I draw shaky breaths as tears fall down my face. My heart pounds mercilessly as I lock eyes with Carterโthe man Iโve once loved, now a mere stranger before me. Everything I thought I knew about my husband. About my life. Destroyed in an instant. The sight before me shocks me to my core. Lillian and Carter. In our bed. Making love. Chapter 2: The man who says he loves me in the morning is now making love with my best friend. Carter's hands roam over Lillian's underdressed body, his lips trailing feverish kisses along her neck, while Lillian's laughter echoes in the room like a cruel taunt. My throat constricts. I want to curse, to scream, to lash out at them with every ounce of fury burning inside me. But my voice fails me, lost in a desert of despair. Finally, Carter and Lillian notice my presence, their affection abruptly extinguished like a candle snuffed out by a gust of wind. My tears fall unchecked now, hot and bitter against my cheeks. Carter scrambles to his feet, hastily pulling on his clothes. โWhy are you here?โ he asks. Lillian remains on the bed, a smirk playing at the corners of her lips, her gaze cold and calculating. She revels in my agony, relishing the destruction she has wrought. โItโs not what you think it is,โ Carter says. My heart shatters into a million jagged pieces. I need to get out of here! I clutch at my ventricle, willing my heart to keep beating. Carter catches up to me, his hand reaching out to touch my arm, but I recoil from his touch as if burned. "Hazel, letโs talk," he demands, his voice raw with emotion. But I shake my head, my resolve hardening with each passing moment. โTalk about what?โ My voice is a mere ghost of its former strength. โAbout how you slept with my best friend behind my back?โ Now, I'm left shattered, questioning every moment of intimacy with Carter, every laugh shared with Lillian. Was it all a facade, a cruel illusion of love and friendship? The pain is unbearable, the disbelief suffocating! I make it back to our house after a hazy drive. I ascend to the master bedroom, my movements fueled by a desperate need to escape. With trembling hands, I begin to pull out my clothes and belongings from the cabinets and drawers, stuffing them haphazardly into a suitcase. I donโt care how messy it looks, donโt care about anything except getting away from all of it! "Whatโs gotten into you this time?" Elmyra calls out, breaking through the haze of my grief. I turn to her, standing in the doorway, her eyes narrowed, her jaw clenched. Her aura exudes mockery and arrogance. I manage to choke out, "Iโm leaving." Elmyra hisses, as if wanting to curse at me. But before she can speak again, I brush past her, down the stairs and flee from the house, my suitcase clutched tightly in my numbing hands. I steady my breath, then climb into my car and start the engine, the roar of the motor drowning out the tumultuous thoughts swirling in my mind. I drive without direction; my subconscious takes control of the steering wheel and leads me to the only place I may feel safe - my parents' house. Mama is actually waiting for me at the threshold, Iโm overwhelmed that I ignore the fact why she knows Iโm coming. I walk in the doorway and papa, whoโs reading a paper, frowns and asks, "Why do you look like that?โ I sink onto the sofa, struggling to hold back my sobs. "What happened?" Mama perches on the edge of the sofa, her hand reaching out to brush away the tears that are staining my cheeks. I take a shaky breath, my heart constricting with pain. "I caught Carter and Lillian...together." I thought I'd have my parentsโ support. But then, to my horror, their expressions darken, a look of apprehension crossing their faces. "Hazel," mama begins, her tone accusatory. "What have you done wrong?" Mamaโs words suffocate me with its cruelty. โHe is cheating on meโ!That asshoโโ Slap! My head rears back from pain and shock. Papa just slaps me across the face! I hold my hand to my cheek. โGo back to Carter now, apologize for leaving, promise him that you won't do it again and that you'll stay by his side.โ From the looks on their faces, I realize that they don't care about Carter's cheating. Only that I have brought disgrace upon them. Mamaโs eyes are cold as she adds, "You must have done something wrong to cause Carter to cheat on you. Have you thought about what it would do to our family? Your brother's scholarship is still on Carter's dime. Your sister is about to out in the society and can't be dragged down by you. Now, do everything you can to not let Carter leave you.โ This is my parents, my adoptive parents. I grew up pleasing them and being the best student in school, but they never look at me. Being adopted at a young age will do that. You are so grateful to the people who have taken you in. You are terrified of making a mistake that they may send you back to the orphanage and decide to adopt another child. A child thatโs more obedient, smarter, better. So you bust yourself trying to make them proud of you. You stifle any part of yourself that may talk back or speak up. It wasn't until I married Carter that papa accepted me. The day we got married was the happiest day of my life. I thought mama and papa have considered me family all these years, now it turns out I was wrong. They don't care about me, at all. Papa says, "Have you had enough, I'm going to call Carter and have him bring you home. " I canโt take this anymore, this isnโt what Iโm here for! This place can't provide the safety or even the comfort I desperately need! I turn on my heels and storm out of the house with my suitcase in hands before they can react. Humiliated, despised, and helplessโฆ as I begin to acknowledge that I lost my husband and my family on the same day. Chapter 3: It all clicks. The late night calls, the flirtings, the unusual caring with Lillian - their chuckles in bed, my parents' coldness, Elmyra's sneers. My mind replays these scenes over and over again, like a broken record. I sit on the edge of the bed of the apartment I rented since last night, the weight of the world keeps pressing down on my shoulders. Just as Iโm sinking deeper into the darkness of my thoughts, my phone shatters the silence. I jolt as I wipe away my tears. My hand trembles slightly as I glance at the screen. Then, my jaw clenches in anger when I see the caller IDโLillian. โReally? You still have the guts to call me?โ I hiss. -["Listen, Hazel, it's evident where his heart lies, and frankly, your dramatics won't change that. Just gracefully accept the truth and move on, like any sensible person would."]- Lilian says in her sweet voice, without a hint of remorse or shame. -[โWe need to talk, Express Cafe, now.โ]- My grip on the phone tightens, my nails digging into my palm as I fight to keep my composure. I force my anger down, steeling myself for whatever lies Lillian is about to spin. "Fool me once" I say courageously, โIf you thinkโฆโ -[โDon't you want to know why and when your husband cheated on you?โ]- She's been my best friend long enough to know what will pinch me. She hangs up, the silence that follows echoing in the small apartment like a deafening roar. Express Cafe is just a few minutes' drive away. I slip into a corner booth and wait, quickly smooth concealer around my swollen eyes, as I watch the door with bated breath. Lilian comes in blushing like a woman in love, and ironically, her love has turned out to be mine. An awkward silence ensues and we stare at our respective coffee cups for a while. โWhy, Lillian?โ I finally ask. "Hazel, you need to face the truth. Carter loves me, not you. He's only with you because he wants an heir, a baby. Once he gets what he wants from you, he'll leave you for me." "Is that so?" I ask, my voice trembling slightly despite my best efforts to maintain my composure. A very faint smile plays at the corners of Lilianโs lips that she tries so hard to hide by tilting her head down as she reaches into her bag and produces her phone. With a few taps of her finger, she turns the screen towards me, revealing a string of text messages between her and Carter. "He's been seeing me behind your back, Hazel," Lilian says, her voice holding a tinged of a smug satisfaction. "He's been telling me everything. How he can't stand being with you, how he's only staying with you for appearanceโs sake. He's using you, and you're too blind to see it." My breath dries in my throat as I read the messages. The Carter in the text messages is nothing like the husband I knew. I can tell by his texts that he is happy, which makes my heart ache even more. โBut what does that have to do with why you betrayed me? You were my best friend,โ I say, trying not to show how much these messages hurt me. โAt first we were friends, but then I realized I could never really respect you. The way you let people walk all over you...Iโm sorry but itโs just pathetic. And then I stayed close to you so I could be near Carter,โ she replies. โHe never loved you, Iโm always his true love. He met me first. โ she continues. I swallow a lump in my throat and quietly take a deep breath. โHow long has this been going on?โ I ask. โPretty much since the beginning. A few months into your marriage, maybe,โ she says without remorse. My head is reeling with the idea that Carter has been cheating on me for so long. Iโm shocked that Lillian has such a mean streak. Sheโs never my friend to begin with. How could I have let these kinds of people into my life, into my heart? Just then I hear the door jingle, prompting me to look up. To my shock, Carter appears. โYou called Carter?โ I ask Lillian in a horrified tone. โYou two really need to talk. You need to think about your life choices, accept the reality and it's good for all of us.โ she replies snidely. She gets up to leave and Carter takes her place in the opposite chair. "Come home with me. We had a good time, didn't we? We can still live the life we had before. Itโs not like you donโt enjoy the things we do together,โ he says. He tries to run his hand up my arm but I slap him away. โDonโt touch me. I only enjoyed them when I thought I was the only one you were doing it with!โ I whisper between my gritted teeth. "I'm the only one who can stand you in bed, you know how boring you used to be in bed? I made you moan over and over. You know you still want me..." He stares at me with those cold eyes. The eyes I once loved. Heโs finally stopped pretending. Itโs all been an act. I see that now. Carter changes his personality to suit his needs. He manipulates people to get what he wants. He manipulated me before and heโs trying to do it again! I say nothing, trying to keep my anger in check. โI donโt know why you are fighting this so hard. Most women would die to be in your place. Theyโd be very happy to get even the tiniest scrap from me,โ He pauses, waiting for my reply. But I keep my silence. โYou agreed to my terms. I have your signature on the prenuptial agreement to prove it. So get over yourself and fulfill your duty to me. Then you can go on about your sad little life, while I rise to the top and make my family proud,โ he boasts. โDid you ever love me?โ I ask. "Love is too strong of a word.โ He laughs out loud as if he has heard something ridiculous. โYou have good breeding, your parents assured me like you would be an obedient wife, and all along you've done well. Why don't you keep it up? Come home now, before I run out of patience." Heโs never loved me. His tone reminds me of the new racehorse he bought last month. A new, premium racehorse, presentable, brings him victories and can be bred to produce foals again. He never sees me as a wife, or even as a person. โNot a chance,โ I say proudly. โRemember your prenup? If you don't bear me children, you will be ruined. Your family will be in debt for the rest of their lives. Don't you dare try to leave me.โ His pupils dilate like that of a wild animal's, and he chokes me with his hand. I can barely breathe, I can feel heโs serious about hurting me, this man I had loved is literally taking my breath away. โIโm leaving you, one way or anotherโฆ." With what strength I have left I try to remove his hand and finish the sentence with the last of my breath. My peripheral vision sees that people are already whispering and looking over at us, and some even take out their phones and start taking pictures of us. โHow are youโฆโ He growls, low and dangerous. He notices the look in the crowd's eyes, and I'm betting he wonโt dare make a scandal like domestic scandal in public if he wants to remain reputable. He stares at me with anger in his eyes. He then lets go and I can finally breathe heavily. I cough, calling his bluff. He finally breaks the stare and leaves in a huff. The look on his face is absolutely worth it. I may have to pay the consequences later. But for now, I feel free for the first time in my life. I will leave Carter, no matter the cost. Chapter 4: Read your contract - This should be on my tombstone. I dug out my prenup from when papa told me not to worry about anything, that they would protect me and all I had to do was sign it, and so I did. But now, I realize that every conditioning of this prenup is working against me. My parents sold me into marriage, and theyโll be furious with me for getting a divorce. Theyโll be bankrupt and vulnerable to attacks without Carterโs protection. โIf you want a divorce, you wonโt get a penny from me. You will no longer be under my protection. Think twice, Hazel.โ Those are Carter's words, which are burned in my memory. I just wanna brush off the agreement and his threat by not thinking too much about them. But then, they start to haunt me, making me understand the realness of it all. Escaping isnโt a possibility, and Carter proves thatโฆ The rain pours as I stand on the doorstep of my rented house, the water mingles with the tears I try so hard to hold back. โYour husband's men took your car. I was about to tell you while theyโre here so you can talk to them about it, but theyโre so aggressive and I got scared that they may hurt me,โ my landlord says. A rush of anger and helplessness courses through me as I stare at the empty space of the parking lot where I last left my car. As if thatโs not enough for Carter, he adds another unwanted surprise for me. โAlso,โ the landlord begins, pity and fear etched across her wrinkled face. "Your husband called through the cellphone of one of his men. He threatened me, said he'd ruin my business if I don't evict you. So.., I can't keep the house rented to you anymore.โ The world seems to tilt, the ground shifting beneath my feet. "B-but, I have nowhere to go. Besides, I need time to find a new place." The landlord shakes her head, her face stern. "I can't risk it. The young Whitlock has too much influence. I can't afford to be caught in whatever marital problem you have." I wanna protest again, but sheโs right. Carter may put her in a difficult situation like heโs doing to me now, and I donโt wanna be the reason for it. With a heavy heart, I pack my things, and drag myself and my suitcase out into the storm. I then head to the nearest hotel. Without cash, I rely on my credit cards. The clerk at the front desk shakes his head as he hands back my credit card to me. "I'm sorry, Mrs. Whitlock. Your card has been declined." My cheeks burn with shame. "Can you try again, please?" The clerk tries again,... and beep! Declined, again! Maybe this hotelโs POS machine isnโt working - at least thatโs what I wanna believe in, though deep down, my inkling is telling me something else. I walk to another hotel, and approach the front desk, my hands shaking as I present my credit card. "I need a room, please," I say, trying to keep my voice steady. To my surprise, without even taking my credit card, the clerk shakes her head. "I'm sorry, Mrs. Whitlock. We can't help you." โWhy?โ I ask with a little frustration. The manager, who looks uncomfortable, comes to the clerkโs rescue, and answers, โMr. Carter Whitlock has banned you from our hotel." Youโve got to be kidding me? Where would I go now? Thereโs no refuge for me now. Carterโs reach is far and his influence powerful, making sure Iโm isolated, vulnerable. Heโs trying to force me back, cutting me off financially, stripping away my options. Soon I will be in debt and poor, which isnโt good, especially that Iโm now going to be a mother. I have to find a way out of this, and the only temporary solution I can think of is to pawn my pearls and earrings for some cash. I quickly head to a pawnshop, and its owner eyes me as I lay my jewelry on the counter. "I need to cash these," I say. He picks up the pearls, turning them over in his hands, his eyes narrowing as he glances at my suitcase. "You left home?โ โY-yes, and itโs hard to find a place to stay. My credit cards have been declining, so I need cash.โ The owner smirks as he says, โNice pieces, but I can't give you much for them. Market's down, you see." My heart sinks. I know heโs lying, taking advantage of my desperation. But what choice do I have - haggling? Then what? Get another rejection? I donโt wanna face with that. "How much?" I ask, bracing myself. He names a figure thatโs insultingly low, but I nod, swallowing my pride and the bitter taste of defeat. "I'll take it." At least I have money that'll last for a few days if I spend it wisely. Thatโs what matters for now. He counts out the bills with deliberate slowness while his eyes on me, a predator sensing vulnerability. When he finally hands over the money, I grab it. But I have to stay in the lobby for a moment, waiting for the rain to stop. Suddenly, my eyes flicker on the TV thatโs currently showing a flash news with a caption; โThe Divorce of the Centuryโ. The wife, once vilified by the town, now stood vindicated by Marius Thorne, the town's most revered lawyer. โMarius Thorne,โ I echo. Marius Thorneโs image flashes on the screen, a vision of confidence and success. His gold eyes, piercing, enchanting even. According to the news, he's a partner at the biggest law firm in town and he never loses in court. โHe may be who I need,โ I murmur to myself, excitement surging within me. Once the rain stops, I begin searching for a new place to stay. With newfound determination and what little cash I have, I find refuge in a cramped flat that doesn't check documents. The landlord, a cold and distant old lady, lays down the rules; no pets allowed, no men allowed, before disappearing from my sight. In this tiny room, my troubled heart finally quiets down. For now, Iโm safe, hidden from Carter's relentless pursuit. Through G****e, I search the name โMarius Thorneโ, and quickly call the numbers on the law firm profile heโs working with. After a few rings, a female voice echoes from the other end of the line. -[โCounsel Commanders Law Firm, how can we help you?โ]- โHi! Iโm filing for divorce and I need to make an appointment with Marius Thorne, is he available to speak with?โ Chapter 5: Divorce is never as easy as I thought it would be. -[โIโm calling to inform you that Mr. Thorne has decided to NOT take your case. We can recommend good divorce lawyers if neededโฆ.โ]- The womanโs tone is cool and reserved over the phone. Confusion clouds my thoughts, and questions race through my mindโwhy would he turn me away? Is he busy? Or does he find my case not worthy of his time? I quickly rush to the law firm, hoping to personally meet and talk to Marius Throne, but Iโm told by his secretary that appointments with Marius Throne are currently lined up for a month from now. So, heโs busy. Even so,... Iโm still hoping that heโll have a change of heart and accept my divorce case if only he can understand my situation. Itโs a good case, hard case to be exact - my prenup agreement is harsh and my husband was caught cheating red-handed. This may pique his interest. The bustling lobby seems to shrink in an instant as I, lost in my thoughts, collide with someone in a sharp, tailored suit. I stumble back, instinctively apologizing. "Oh, I'm so sor-!" But when the man speaks, I freeze mid-apology. "Hazel?" he says, his voice a mix of surprise and recognition. My brow furrows as I stare at him, trying to place the familiar handsome face. Then, it hits me. "Leslie?!" I exclaim, my confusion giving way to excitement. "It's nice to see you again!" Leslie returns my smile, his eyes lighting up with warmth. "It's nice to see you again too." My mind trips me back to our high school days, the laughter, the secrets shared, which were overshadowed by the years of silence that followed my marriage to Carter. "Itโs been a long time,โ I say. โWhat are you doing in a place like this?" A proud smile tugs at Leslie's lips as he proudly gestures around the lobby. "I work here as a Senior Legal Associate." Senior Legal Associate? - I echo inwardly with awe. Quickly, a glimmer of possibility shines through my uncertainty! And when Leslie asks the question back to me, I know I have to seize the opportunity. โHow about you, what are you doing here?โ In a heartbeat, I reply, "I'm divorcing my husband, and I need to talk to Attorney Thorne now. His secretary said he has many cases lined up for him. But heโs my only hope. Can you help me meet him, please?" As I wait for his response, I look into his eyes, praying for a lifeline. โMr. Thorne is a troublesome boss, difficult to work with, and even harder to persuade,โ he says. My stubbornness refuses to let doubt cloud my determination. Iโm desperate. Despite the warning signs, I press on, my resolve unshaken. "Just let me talk to him. Then I'll decide whether I still want to trust my case to him or not... please?" Leslie's smile turns brittle. "Alright. I'll try to talk to him first about you. Follow me." I follow Leslie, then wait outside one of the doors that are lining the corridor as I watch him disappear into the room. I hope Leslie's charm will be enough to sway Marius Thorne, to at least grant me a chance to plead my case. And maybe, just maybe, if I can make him understand, I can turn the tide in my favor. After a moment of agony, Leslie finally emerges from the room, his smile radiant as he meets my eager gaze. โYou may now go in,โ he announces, his voice tinged with excitement. My heart leaps with anticipation, and I can't help but squeal with delight. With a grin, I say, โThank you so, so much!โ I waste no time in crossing the threshold into the room. As I close the door, my eyes quickly fall upon Marius Thorne behind the mahogany desk. Heโs tall and heโs impeccably handsome too, more so than Leslie and even Carter himself. Clad in a printed suit, he exudes an air of impassiveness that sends chills down my spine. His jawline is sharp, his gold eyes are more piercing in person than they were on TV, and his dark hair perfectly groomed. Mariusโ voice is devoid of emotion just like his expression. "My secretary and Leslie told me that youโre planning to divorce your husband, Carter of the Whitlock Family.โ Surprised, I ask, "You know my husband?" Is Marius Thorne turning me off because of my husband? He dodges my question, and delivers his verdict instead. "I have a full schedule for the rest of the year to take on new cases. I can recommend good divorce lawyers to you If you need..." Disappointment and frustration foam in my heart, my hands clenching to my sides. "Is there anything I can do to change your mind?" Marius remains unmoved. Without a tiny hint of second-thought, he crashes me with a one-word answer, โNone.โ Pride becomes my shield from rejection. Iโve walked away from anyone where Iโm unwanted. I did that from Carter and his family, from my parents, God, I can just walk away from this stranger too! With a forced smile, I turn to the door. But just as I reach the threshold, a hand grips my wrist with unexpected force. Then, Carter's angry face looms over me. I struggle to maintain my balance. "Carter, let go of me!" I demand, my voice trembling with fear and defiance. โWhat do you think youโre doing here?!โ he asks back, his face red with beasty fury. Carter drags me aggressively. I try to get rid of him, shoving my wrist from his iron grip, but his strength is overpowering. Finally, we reach the lobby, where curious eyes watch our confrontation unfold. Carter releases my wrist, but my humiliation doesn't end there. In a voice sharp and cold, he unleashes a torrent of threats that makes my blood run cold. "I own half of this law firm. When my wife came to my firm looking for a divorce lawyer, You think I wouldn't notice that?โโ" My eyes widen in surpriseโฆ thatโs news to me. Carter pinches my hand and says, โYou didn't really think that you could find a lawyer who would dare take you on, did you?โ My mind goes blank, could this be the reason why Marius Thorne kept refusing me? Is there any other divorce attorney in town who will take my case? Whoโs not scared of Carter? Carter grabs my arm once again. โStop defying me! You canโt just waltz out of our marriage without consequences. Didnโt I already make sure you know that? The hardship youโre going through now is just the tip of the iceberg of what else I can do to you." I try to let go myself, but itโs no use, Carter is much stronger than I am. He then tightens his grip on me, which prompts me to hiss in pain. โCarter, please,โ I beg. Carter parts his lips, but before he can continue his tirade, a pair of hands intervenes, grasping both my arm and his. I look up, and see Marius standing before us. | LEARN_MORE | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&u | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | redtgb.com | VIDEO | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/453503632_1016729286592568_258020938465158865_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=108&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=hNbG2ecBQU0Q7kNvgHe6v8-&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=ABPwkCq691JLqdHhVoqj7W9&oh=00_AYCS_jFMBCwKbs0MSZtlAvCZmmzShookMZMNFUhDew63Ew&oe=672FFE43 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,546 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312542}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 | ๐Read the next chapters๐ | Chapter 1: PROLOGUE: Our three-year marriage is facing many challenges, and growing up as an orphan, who am I to expect anything better? My husband, Carter Whitlock, is everything Iโve ever dreamed of. Strong, kind, and fiercely devoted, heโs swept me off my feet from the moment we first met. In his arms, Iโve found solace and belonging. My mother-in-law, Elmyra, always has a disapproving gaze thatโs never far from my side. The other members of the Whitlock family, too, seem to regard me with suspicion and disdain, as if Iโm an interloper in their midst. I long to earn their acceptance, to prove myself worthy of their family name. Each day, I strive to be the perfect wife for Carter, tending to his needs with care and devotion. Yet no matter how hard I try, it seems as though I can never quite measure up to their expectations. Even so, a sense of determination always stirs within me. I wonโt be cowed by their judgment, nor wonโt I allow their harsh words to dim the light of my love for Carter. I'll be strong and unwavering in my resolve, and Iโll make my husband proud. ------ Hazelโs POV I have an unbelievable secret that I canโt wait to tell my husband. With our three year anniversary coming up, itโs about time we make our family complete. I hear the rumors being spread about me by his relatives; the whisper that Iโm barren. I look down at the little pink plus sign on the test and I smile. Itโs all going to change now. Carter will be so happy when I tell him. When I first met Carter at college, I had just stepped out of the campus coffee shop and a cyclist almost ran me over. Carter stepped in and grabbed me out of harmโs way. I instantly felt butterflies in my stomach. He has been my hero from the very beginning. He is the city's most famous bachelor. and an incredibly rich man. I never thought he would be interested in someone like me. I had nothing to give him. Because of that, I have always felt inferior to him in our marriage. Not everyone approved of the marriage from the beginning. The house staff is respectful, but I think itโs only because I am the mistress. Not because they think I deserve it. I see the judgment in their eyes when they look at me. Both my mother-in-law and sisters-in-law are constantly making comments about my appearance. They love to remind me that I represent the formidable Whitlock family. As if my looks and the way I dress will forever stain their familyโs image. I wasnโt even allowed to make any decisions on my own wedding. I tried to pick out the flowers and I was told my taste was โtoo simpleโ for a wedding to the most nobel family. I have also been told on several occasions that I should be โseen and not heardโ during family meetings. Nobody trusts my opinion, let alone asks for it. Carterโs mother, Elmyra, has always been distant and indifferent to me. She treats me like an outcast and every time she approaches me I get nervous. Her hair is always perfectly done up; her makeup and clothes flawless. She is an intimidating woman and she often makes me feel small. She knows exactly what to say to cut deeply too. โI suppose you are happy riding my sonโs coat tails the rest of your life? What purpose do you serve if you canโt give him an heir?โ โItโs probably for the best, dear. As an orphan, you wouldnโt know the first thing about being a mother anyway.โ โI donโt know what my son was thinking when he decided to marry you. You arenโt strong enough to be the lady of this family.โ But I know I can rely on Carter to protect me from her harsh words and actions when heโs around. He even defends me against his mother when she is hard on me. โI know you want to be a grandmother mom, but Hazel and I are happy. We will have a child when we are ready.โ Then he turns to me and kisses me on the forehead. I donโt know why Elmyra hates me so much. It makes me feel bad about myself, like I will never be good enough for her son. But, from now on, everything is going to change. Even Elmyra will have to start treating me better once she hears the news. I have a husband who adores me, a beautiful home and now, after years of trying, a new addition on the way to make our family complete. Me, an orphan, finally getting a real family to call her own. Just then Carter walks out of the bedroom looking as handsome as ever with his dark blonde hair, piercing blue eyes and chiseled jaw. โMorning, babe. Whatโs for breakfast?โ Carter asks as he strolls into the kitchen. He kisses me on the cheek and lightly squeezes my wrist as he walks past me to get his coffee. โEggs and bacon,โ I reply with a giggle. We eat our breakfast in companionable silence. I cherish every moment alone with my husband. I donโt care what his mother or his other relatives think. I just want his approval. The one person who has truly loved me and been there for me in my life. While Iโm standing at the sink washing dishes, I feel a presence behind me suddenly. Something cold and heavy is placed on my heart. I look down at the most beautiful diamond necklace Iโve ever seen. It has a big cushion cut stone in the center and smaller stones wrapping up the sides of the necklace. โCarter! What is this for?โ I ask breathlessly. โFor being so beautiful,โ he replies. He leads me over to a mirror on the wall and I gasp in surprise. โItโs stunning,โ I say in awe. โTonight Iโd like you to wear it to dinner with that short black dress I like. And, when we get back Iโd like you to wear only this,โ he says suggestively. โYes, sir,โ I say softly. I tip my head back to allow him access to my lips. He kisses me deeply and caresses my body and I lean into him. โI wish I could stay in bed all day with you, but this meeting is important,โ he moans and steps back. โI will be waiting for you,โ I say with a coy look. โWhat would I do without you? You are the love of my life,โ he replies. He gives me another quick kiss and then heโs headed towards the door. I sigh happily, thinking about how much Iโm going to miss him today. We had already planned on going out to dinner, but now it's going to be special. I will tell him Iโm with child tonight and surprise him. Out of the blue, my phone rings. I see that itโs my best friend, Lillian. Iโve been so focused on being the perfect wife for Carter that Iโve lost touch with many of my friends. But Lilian is different. She knows everything about Carter and me. She knows how my mother-in-law and the other family members treat me. She has always been there for me. She knows what to say to make me feel better about anything. -[โHi, Hazel. How are you?โ]- she asks. โIโm doing ok,โ I say. -[โYour voice doesnโt sound ok. Spill it.โ]- โItโs nothing, just had a visit from Elmyra.โ -[โYou really shouldnโt put up with her crap, Hazel. Talk to Carter about it, maybe he can get her to lay off.โ]- โI appreciate that but I think that will just make me look weak to her. Sheโs a complicated woman,โ I say. -[โSheโs a shrew,โ]- Lillianโs sarcasm makes me laugh. โSpeaking of which, I have to get ready for this afternoon tea so she doesnโt have my head. Talk later?โ I ask. -[โSo youโll be gone all afternoon?โ]- โYes, unfortunately. These ladies love to drone on about family traditions,โ I reply and then add, โWhy, do you need something?โ -[โNo, Iโm ok. I was going to ask you to lunch but another time. Iโm always here for you Hazel so if it gets too much give me a call.โ]- โThank you. You are such a great friend,โ I reply warmly. I hang up with Lillian and feel a pang of regret. Iโm going to make it a priority to dedicate more time to our friendship. My day is over quickly. The tea goes very well and I decide to head home early. Usually, Iโd follow the women back to Elmyra's house for dinner. I always want to be part of them. But this time, Iโm very tired. I walk into our apartment and set my bag on the counter. I hum to myself, excited about seeing Carter soon. I start to walk into the kitchen when I hear a noise. It sounds like a moan. I stop what Iโm doing instantly. Fear creeps up my spine. I make my way back towards the sound and I hear it again. Then I hear a bang noise and I almost jump out of my skin. My heart is pounding and my legs feel shaky. Something is wrong. I know it in my gut. I start to push the door open slowly and it makes a small creaking sound. What I see makes me gasp. A woman is grinding on top of Carter and heโs moaning. He grabs her groin and looks up at her adoringly. I feel like someone has just ripped my heart out. My breathing becomes erratic. I start to panic. My knees feel like jello. I clutch the door frame for support. How could he do this to me?! This man who said I was the love of his life just this morning! This man who gave me a beautiful necklace and told me he hated leaving me! Just then, the woman turns to me with an evil grin. Like sheโs enjoying making me watch in horror. I canโt believe my own eyes. I draw shaky breaths as tears fall down my face. My heart pounds mercilessly as I lock eyes with Carterโthe man Iโve once loved, now a mere stranger before me. Everything I thought I knew about my husband. About my life. Destroyed in an instant. The sight before me shocks me to my core. Lillian and Carter. In our bed. Making love. Chapter 2: The man who says he loves me in the morning is now making love with my best friend. Carter's hands roam over Lillian's underdressed body, his lips trailing feverish kisses along her neck, while Lillian's laughter echoes in the room like a cruel taunt. My throat constricts. I want to curse, to scream, to lash out at them with every ounce of fury burning inside me. But my voice fails me, lost in a desert of despair. Finally, Carter and Lillian notice my presence, their affection abruptly extinguished like a candle snuffed out by a gust of wind. My tears fall unchecked now, hot and bitter against my cheeks. Carter scrambles to his feet, hastily pulling on his clothes. โWhy are you here?โ he asks. Lillian remains on the bed, a smirk playing at the corners of her lips, her gaze cold and calculating. She revels in my agony, relishing the destruction she has wrought. โItโs not what you think it is,โ Carter says. My heart shatters into a million jagged pieces. I need to get out of here! I clutch at my ventricle, willing my heart to keep beating. Carter catches up to me, his hand reaching out to touch my arm, but I recoil from his touch as if burned. "Hazel, letโs talk," he demands, his voice raw with emotion. But I shake my head, my resolve hardening with each passing moment. โTalk about what?โ My voice is a mere ghost of its former strength. โAbout how you slept with my best friend behind my back?โ Now, I'm left shattered, questioning every moment of intimacy with Carter, every laugh shared with Lillian. Was it all a facade, a cruel illusion of love and friendship? The pain is unbearable, the disbelief suffocating! I make it back to our house after a hazy drive. I ascend to the master bedroom, my movements fueled by a desperate need to escape. With trembling hands, I begin to pull out my clothes and belongings from the cabinets and drawers, stuffing them haphazardly into a suitcase. I donโt care how messy it looks, donโt care about anything except getting away from all of it! "Whatโs gotten into you this time?" Elmyra calls out, breaking through the haze of my grief. I turn to her, standing in the doorway, her eyes narrowed, her jaw clenched. Her aura exudes mockery and arrogance. I manage to choke out, "Iโm leaving." Elmyra hisses, as if wanting to curse at me. But before she can speak again, I brush past her, down the stairs and flee from the house, my suitcase clutched tightly in my numbing hands. I steady my breath, then climb into my car and start the engine, the roar of the motor drowning out the tumultuous thoughts swirling in my mind. I drive without direction; my subconscious takes control of the steering wheel and leads me to the only place I may feel safe - my parents' house. Mama is actually waiting for me at the threshold, Iโm overwhelmed that I ignore the fact why she knows Iโm coming. I walk in the doorway and papa, whoโs reading a paper, frowns and asks, "Why do you look like that?โ I sink onto the sofa, struggling to hold back my sobs. "What happened?" Mama perches on the edge of the sofa, her hand reaching out to brush away the tears that are staining my cheeks. I take a shaky breath, my heart constricting with pain. "I caught Carter and Lillian...together." I thought I'd have my parentsโ support. But then, to my horror, their expressions darken, a look of apprehension crossing their faces. "Hazel," mama begins, her tone accusatory. "What have you done wrong?" Mamaโs words suffocate me with its cruelty. โHe is cheating on meโ!That asshoโโ Slap! My head rears back from pain and shock. Papa just slaps me across the face! I hold my hand to my cheek. โGo back to Carter now, apologize for leaving, promise him that you won't do it again and that you'll stay by his side.โ From the looks on their faces, I realize that they don't care about Carter's cheating. Only that I have brought disgrace upon them. Mamaโs eyes are cold as she adds, "You must have done something wrong to cause Carter to cheat on you. Have you thought about what it would do to our family? Your brother's scholarship is still on Carter's dime. Your sister is about to out in the society and can't be dragged down by you. Now, do everything you can to not let Carter leave you.โ This is my parents, my adoptive parents. I grew up pleasing them and being the best student in school, but they never look at me. Being adopted at a young age will do that. You are so grateful to the people who have taken you in. You are terrified of making a mistake that they may send you back to the orphanage and decide to adopt another child. A child thatโs more obedient, smarter, better. So you bust yourself trying to make them proud of you. You stifle any part of yourself that may talk back or speak up. It wasn't until I married Carter that papa accepted me. The day we got married was the happiest day of my life. I thought mama and papa have considered me family all these years, now it turns out I was wrong. They don't care about me, at all. Papa says, "Have you had enough, I'm going to call Carter and have him bring you home. " I canโt take this anymore, this isnโt what Iโm here for! This place can't provide the safety or even the comfort I desperately need! I turn on my heels and storm out of the house with my suitcase in hands before they can react. Humiliated, despised, and helplessโฆ as I begin to acknowledge that I lost my husband and my family on the same day. Chapter 3: It all clicks. The late night calls, the flirtings, the unusual caring with Lillian - their chuckles in bed, my parents' coldness, Elmyra's sneers. My mind replays these scenes over and over again, like a broken record. I sit on the edge of the bed of the apartment I rented since last night, the weight of the world keeps pressing down on my shoulders. Just as Iโm sinking deeper into the darkness of my thoughts, my phone shatters the silence. I jolt as I wipe away my tears. My hand trembles slightly as I glance at the screen. Then, my jaw clenches in anger when I see the caller IDโLillian. โReally? You still have the guts to call me?โ I hiss. -["Listen, Hazel, it's evident where his heart lies, and frankly, your dramatics won't change that. Just gracefully accept the truth and move on, like any sensible person would."]- Lilian says in her sweet voice, without a hint of remorse or shame. -[โWe need to talk, Express Cafe, now.โ]- My grip on the phone tightens, my nails digging into my palm as I fight to keep my composure. I force my anger down, steeling myself for whatever lies Lillian is about to spin. "Fool me once" I say courageously, โIf you thinkโฆโ -[โDon't you want to know why and when your husband cheated on you?โ]- She's been my best friend long enough to know what will pinch me. She hangs up, the silence that follows echoing in the small apartment like a deafening roar. Express Cafe is just a few minutes' drive away. I slip into a corner booth and wait, quickly smooth concealer around my swollen eyes, as I watch the door with bated breath. Lilian comes in blushing like a woman in love, and ironically, her love has turned out to be mine. An awkward silence ensues and we stare at our respective coffee cups for a while. โWhy, Lillian?โ I finally ask. "Hazel, you need to face the truth. Carter loves me, not you. He's only with you because he wants an heir, a baby. Once he gets what he wants from you, he'll leave you for me." "Is that so?" I ask, my voice trembling slightly despite my best efforts to maintain my composure. A very faint smile plays at the corners of Lilianโs lips that she tries so hard to hide by tilting her head down as she reaches into her bag and produces her phone. With a few taps of her finger, she turns the screen towards me, revealing a string of text messages between her and Carter. "He's been seeing me behind your back, Hazel," Lilian says, her voice holding a tinged of a smug satisfaction. "He's been telling me everything. How he can't stand being with you, how he's only staying with you for appearanceโs sake. He's using you, and you're too blind to see it." My breath dries in my throat as I read the messages. The Carter in the text messages is nothing like the husband I knew. I can tell by his texts that he is happy, which makes my heart ache even more. โBut what does that have to do with why you betrayed me? You were my best friend,โ I say, trying not to show how much these messages hurt me. โAt first we were friends, but then I realized I could never really respect you. The way you let people walk all over you...Iโm sorry but itโs just pathetic. And then I stayed close to you so I could be near Carter,โ she replies. โHe never loved you, Iโm always his true love. He met me first. โ she continues. I swallow a lump in my throat and quietly take a deep breath. โHow long has this been going on?โ I ask. โPretty much since the beginning. A few months into your marriage, maybe,โ she says without remorse. My head is reeling with the idea that Carter has been cheating on me for so long. Iโm shocked that Lillian has such a mean streak. Sheโs never my friend to begin with. How could I have let these kinds of people into my life, into my heart? Just then I hear the door jingle, prompting me to look up. To my shock, Carter appears. โYou called Carter?โ I ask Lillian in a horrified tone. โYou two really need to talk. You need to think about your life choices, accept the reality and it's good for all of us.โ she replies snidely. She gets up to leave and Carter takes her place in the opposite chair. "Come home with me. We had a good time, didn't we? We can still live the life we had before. Itโs not like you donโt enjoy the things we do together,โ he says. He tries to run his hand up my arm but I slap him away. โDonโt touch me. I only enjoyed them when I thought I was the only one you were doing it with!โ I whisper between my gritted teeth. "I'm the only one who can stand you in bed, you know how boring you used to be in bed? I made you moan over and over. You know you still want me..." He stares at me with those cold eyes. The eyes I once loved. Heโs finally stopped pretending. Itโs all been an act. I see that now. Carter changes his personality to suit his needs. He manipulates people to get what he wants. He manipulated me before and heโs trying to do it again! I say nothing, trying to keep my anger in check. โI donโt know why you are fighting this so hard. Most women would die to be in your place. Theyโd be very happy to get even the tiniest scrap from me,โ He pauses, waiting for my reply. But I keep my silence. โYou agreed to my terms. I have your signature on the prenuptial agreement to prove it. So get over yourself and fulfill your duty to me. Then you can go on about your sad little life, while I rise to the top and make my family proud,โ he boasts. โDid you ever love me?โ I ask. "Love is too strong of a word.โ He laughs out loud as if he has heard something ridiculous. โYou have good breeding, your parents assured me like you would be an obedient wife, and all along you've done well. Why don't you keep it up? Come home now, before I run out of patience." Heโs never loved me. His tone reminds me of the new racehorse he bought last month. A new, premium racehorse, presentable, brings him victories and can be bred to produce foals again. He never sees me as a wife, or even as a person. โNot a chance,โ I say proudly. โRemember your prenup? If you don't bear me children, you will be ruined. Your family will be in debt for the rest of their lives. Don't you dare try to leave me.โ His pupils dilate like that of a wild animal's, and he chokes me with his hand. I can barely breathe, I can feel heโs serious about hurting me, this man I had loved is literally taking my breath away. โIโm leaving you, one way or anotherโฆ." With what strength I have left I try to remove his hand and finish the sentence with the last of my breath. My peripheral vision sees that people are already whispering and looking over at us, and some even take out their phones and start taking pictures of us. โHow are youโฆโ He growls, low and dangerous. He notices the look in the crowd's eyes, and I'm betting he wonโt dare make a scandal like domestic scandal in public if he wants to remain reputable. He stares at me with anger in his eyes. He then lets go and I can finally breathe heavily. I cough, calling his bluff. He finally breaks the stare and leaves in a huff. The look on his face is absolutely worth it. I may have to pay the consequences later. But for now, I feel free for the first time in my life. I will leave Carter, no matter the cost. Chapter 4: Read your contract - This should be on my tombstone. I dug out my prenup from when papa told me not to worry about anything, that they would protect me and all I had to do was sign it, and so I did. But now, I realize that every conditioning of this prenup is working against me. My parents sold me into marriage, and theyโll be furious with me for getting a divorce. Theyโll be bankrupt and vulnerable to attacks without Carterโs protection. โIf you want a divorce, you wonโt get a penny from me. You will no longer be under my protection. Think twice, Hazel.โ Those are Carter's words, which are burned in my memory. I just wanna brush off the agreement and his threat by not thinking too much about them. But then, they start to haunt me, making me understand the realness of it all. Escaping isnโt a possibility, and Carter proves thatโฆ The rain pours as I stand on the doorstep of my rented house, the water mingles with the tears I try so hard to hold back. โYour husband's men took your car. I was about to tell you while theyโre here so you can talk to them about it, but theyโre so aggressive and I got scared that they may hurt me,โ my landlord says. A rush of anger and helplessness courses through me as I stare at the empty space of the parking lot where I last left my car. As if thatโs not enough for Carter, he adds another unwanted surprise for me. โAlso,โ the landlord begins, pity and fear etched across her wrinkled face. "Your husband called through the cellphone of one of his men. He threatened me, said he'd ruin my business if I don't evict you. So.., I can't keep the house rented to you anymore.โ The world seems to tilt, the ground shifting beneath my feet. "B-but, I have nowhere to go. Besides, I need time to find a new place." The landlord shakes her head, her face stern. "I can't risk it. The young Whitlock has too much influence. I can't afford to be caught in whatever marital problem you have." I wanna protest again, but sheโs right. Carter may put her in a difficult situation like heโs doing to me now, and I donโt wanna be the reason for it. With a heavy heart, I pack my things, and drag myself and my suitcase out into the storm. I then head to the nearest hotel. Without cash, I rely on my credit cards. The clerk at the front desk shakes his head as he hands back my credit card to me. "I'm sorry, Mrs. Whitlock. Your card has been declined." My cheeks burn with shame. "Can you try again, please?" The clerk tries again,... and beep! Declined, again! Maybe this hotelโs POS machine isnโt working - at least thatโs what I wanna believe in, though deep down, my inkling is telling me something else. I walk to another hotel, and approach the front desk, my hands shaking as I present my credit card. "I need a room, please," I say, trying to keep my voice steady. To my surprise, without even taking my credit card, the clerk shakes her head. "I'm sorry, Mrs. Whitlock. We can't help you." โWhy?โ I ask with a little frustration. The manager, who looks uncomfortable, comes to the clerkโs rescue, and answers, โMr. Carter Whitlock has banned you from our hotel." Youโve got to be kidding me? Where would I go now? Thereโs no refuge for me now. Carterโs reach is far and his influence powerful, making sure Iโm isolated, vulnerable. Heโs trying to force me back, cutting me off financially, stripping away my options. Soon I will be in debt and poor, which isnโt good, especially that Iโm now going to be a mother. I have to find a way out of this, and the only temporary solution I can think of is to pawn my pearls and earrings for some cash. I quickly head to a pawnshop, and its owner eyes me as I lay my jewelry on the counter. "I need to cash these," I say. He picks up the pearls, turning them over in his hands, his eyes narrowing as he glances at my suitcase. "You left home?โ โY-yes, and itโs hard to find a place to stay. My credit cards have been declining, so I need cash.โ The owner smirks as he says, โNice pieces, but I can't give you much for them. Market's down, you see." My heart sinks. I know heโs lying, taking advantage of my desperation. But what choice do I have - haggling? Then what? Get another rejection? I donโt wanna face with that. "How much?" I ask, bracing myself. He names a figure thatโs insultingly low, but I nod, swallowing my pride and the bitter taste of defeat. "I'll take it." At least I have money that'll last for a few days if I spend it wisely. Thatโs what matters for now. He counts out the bills with deliberate slowness while his eyes on me, a predator sensing vulnerability. When he finally hands over the money, I grab it. But I have to stay in the lobby for a moment, waiting for the rain to stop. Suddenly, my eyes flicker on the TV thatโs currently showing a flash news with a caption; โThe Divorce of the Centuryโ. The wife, once vilified by the town, now stood vindicated by Marius Thorne, the town's most revered lawyer. โMarius Thorne,โ I echo. Marius Thorneโs image flashes on the screen, a vision of confidence and success. His gold eyes, piercing, enchanting even. According to the news, he's a partner at the biggest law firm in town and he never loses in court. โHe may be who I need,โ I murmur to myself, excitement surging within me. Once the rain stops, I begin searching for a new place to stay. With newfound determination and what little cash I have, I find refuge in a cramped flat that doesn't check documents. The landlord, a cold and distant old lady, lays down the rules; no pets allowed, no men allowed, before disappearing from my sight. In this tiny room, my troubled heart finally quiets down. For now, Iโm safe, hidden from Carter's relentless pursuit. Through G****e, I search the name โMarius Thorneโ, and quickly call the numbers on the law firm profile heโs working with. After a few rings, a female voice echoes from the other end of the line. -[โCounsel Commanders Law Firm, how can we help you?โ]- โHi! Iโm filing for divorce and I need to make an appointment with Marius Thorne, is he available to speak with?โ Chapter 5: Divorce is never as easy as I thought it would be. -[โIโm calling to inform you that Mr. Thorne has decided to NOT take your case. We can recommend good divorce lawyers if neededโฆ.โ]- The womanโs tone is cool and reserved over the phone. Confusion clouds my thoughts, and questions race through my mindโwhy would he turn me away? Is he busy? Or does he find my case not worthy of his time? I quickly rush to the law firm, hoping to personally meet and talk to Marius Throne, but Iโm told by his secretary that appointments with Marius Throne are currently lined up for a month from now. So, heโs busy. Even so,... Iโm still hoping that heโll have a change of heart and accept my divorce case if only he can understand my situation. Itโs a good case, hard case to be exact - my prenup agreement is harsh and my husband was caught cheating red-handed. This may pique his interest. The bustling lobby seems to shrink in an instant as I, lost in my thoughts, collide with someone in a sharp, tailored suit. I stumble back, instinctively apologizing. "Oh, I'm so sor-!" But when the man speaks, I freeze mid-apology. "Hazel?" he says, his voice a mix of surprise and recognition. My brow furrows as I stare at him, trying to place the familiar handsome face. Then, it hits me. "Leslie?!" I exclaim, my confusion giving way to excitement. "It's nice to see you again!" Leslie returns my smile, his eyes lighting up with warmth. "It's nice to see you again too." My mind trips me back to our high school days, the laughter, the secrets shared, which were overshadowed by the years of silence that followed my marriage to Carter. "Itโs been a long time,โ I say. โWhat are you doing in a place like this?" A proud smile tugs at Leslie's lips as he proudly gestures around the lobby. "I work here as a Senior Legal Associate." Senior Legal Associate? - I echo inwardly with awe. Quickly, a glimmer of possibility shines through my uncertainty! And when Leslie asks the question back to me, I know I have to seize the opportunity. โHow about you, what are you doing here?โ In a heartbeat, I reply, "I'm divorcing my husband, and I need to talk to Attorney Thorne now. His secretary said he has many cases lined up for him. But heโs my only hope. Can you help me meet him, please?" As I wait for his response, I look into his eyes, praying for a lifeline. โMr. Thorne is a troublesome boss, difficult to work with, and even harder to persuade,โ he says. My stubbornness refuses to let doubt cloud my determination. Iโm desperate. Despite the warning signs, I press on, my resolve unshaken. "Just let me talk to him. Then I'll decide whether I still want to trust my case to him or not... please?" Leslie's smile turns brittle. "Alright. I'll try to talk to him first about you. Follow me." I follow Leslie, then wait outside one of the doors that are lining the corridor as I watch him disappear into the room. I hope Leslie's charm will be enough to sway Marius Thorne, to at least grant me a chance to plead my case. And maybe, just maybe, if I can make him understand, I can turn the tide in my favor. After a moment of agony, Leslie finally emerges from the room, his smile radiant as he meets my eager gaze. โYou may now go in,โ he announces, his voice tinged with excitement. My heart leaps with anticipation, and I can't help but squeal with delight. With a grin, I say, โThank you so, so much!โ I waste no time in crossing the threshold into the room. As I close the door, my eyes quickly fall upon Marius Thorne behind the mahogany desk. Heโs tall and heโs impeccably handsome too, more so than Leslie and even Carter himself. Clad in a printed suit, he exudes an air of impassiveness that sends chills down my spine. His jawline is sharp, his gold eyes are more piercing in person than they were on TV, and his dark hair perfectly groomed. Mariusโ voice is devoid of emotion just like his expression. "My secretary and Leslie told me that youโre planning to divorce your husband, Carter of the Whitlock Family.โ Surprised, I ask, "You know my husband?" Is Marius Thorne turning me off because of my husband? He dodges my question, and delivers his verdict instead. "I have a full schedule for the rest of the year to take on new cases. I can recommend good divorce lawyers to you If you need..." Disappointment and frustration foam in my heart, my hands clenching to my sides. "Is there anything I can do to change your mind?" Marius remains unmoved. Without a tiny hint of second-thought, he crashes me with a one-word answer, โNone.โ Pride becomes my shield from rejection. Iโve walked away from anyone where Iโm unwanted. I did that from Carter and his family, from my parents, God, I can just walk away from this stranger too! With a forced smile, I turn to the door. But just as I reach the threshold, a hand grips my wrist with unexpected force. Then, Carter's angry face looms over me. I struggle to maintain my balance. "Carter, let go of me!" I demand, my voice trembling with fear and defiance. โWhat do you think youโre doing here?!โ he asks back, his face red with beasty fury. Carter drags me aggressively. I try to get rid of him, shoving my wrist from his iron grip, but his strength is overpowering. Finally, we reach the lobby, where curious eyes watch our confrontation unfold. Carter releases my wrist, but my humiliation doesn't end there. In a voice sharp and cold, he unleashes a torrent of threats that makes my blood run cold. "I own half of this law firm. When my wife came to my firm looking for a divorce lawyer, You think I wouldn't notice that?โโ" My eyes widen in surpriseโฆ thatโs news to me. Carter pinches my hand and says, โYou didn't really think that you could find a lawyer who would dare take you on, did you?โ My mind goes blank, could this be the reason why Marius Thorne kept refusing me? Is there any other divorce attorney in town who will take my case? Whoโs not scared of Carter? Carter grabs my arm once again. โStop defying me! You canโt just waltz out of our marriage without consequences. Didnโt I already make sure you know that? The hardship youโre going through now is just the tip of the iceberg of what else I can do to you." I try to let go myself, but itโs no use, Carter is much stronger than I am. He then tightens his grip on me, which prompts me to hiss in pain. โCarter, please,โ I beg. Carter parts his lips, but before he can continue his tirade, a pair of hands intervenes, grasping both my arm and his. I look up, and see Marius standing before us. | LEARN_MORE | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&u | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | redtgb.com | VIDEO | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/453507448_781978144100979_2190600970164516376_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=6rsj5IGyyB4Q7kNvgHwgj9n&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=ABPwkCq691JLqdHhVoqj7W9&oh=00_AYAIzMQ5OmzjdgDEzcAVi845jhG9P2-TeNlRMwYVrDjqyA&oe=672FE8A0 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,553 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312542}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 | ๐Read the next chapters๐ | Chapter 1: PROLOGUE: Our three-year marriage is facing many challenges, and growing up as an orphan, who am I to expect anything better? My husband, Carter Whitlock, is everything Iโve ever dreamed of. Strong, kind, and fiercely devoted, heโs swept me off my feet from the moment we first met. In his arms, Iโve found solace and belonging. My mother-in-law, Elmyra, always has a disapproving gaze thatโs never far from my side. The other members of the Whitlock family, too, seem to regard me with suspicion and disdain, as if Iโm an interloper in their midst. I long to earn their acceptance, to prove myself worthy of their family name. Each day, I strive to be the perfect wife for Carter, tending to his needs with care and devotion. Yet no matter how hard I try, it seems as though I can never quite measure up to their expectations. Even so, a sense of determination always stirs within me. I wonโt be cowed by their judgment, nor wonโt I allow their harsh words to dim the light of my love for Carter. I'll be strong and unwavering in my resolve, and Iโll make my husband proud. ------ Hazelโs POV I have an unbelievable secret that I canโt wait to tell my husband. With our three year anniversary coming up, itโs about time we make our family complete. I hear the rumors being spread about me by his relatives; the whisper that Iโm barren. I look down at the little pink plus sign on the test and I smile. Itโs all going to change now. Carter will be so happy when I tell him. When I first met Carter at college, I had just stepped out of the campus coffee shop and a cyclist almost ran me over. Carter stepped in and grabbed me out of harmโs way. I instantly felt butterflies in my stomach. He has been my hero from the very beginning. He is the city's most famous bachelor. and an incredibly rich man. I never thought he would be interested in someone like me. I had nothing to give him. Because of that, I have always felt inferior to him in our marriage. Not everyone approved of the marriage from the beginning. The house staff is respectful, but I think itโs only because I am the mistress. Not because they think I deserve it. I see the judgment in their eyes when they look at me. Both my mother-in-law and sisters-in-law are constantly making comments about my appearance. They love to remind me that I represent the formidable Whitlock family. As if my looks and the way I dress will forever stain their familyโs image. I wasnโt even allowed to make any decisions on my own wedding. I tried to pick out the flowers and I was told my taste was โtoo simpleโ for a wedding to the most nobel family. I have also been told on several occasions that I should be โseen and not heardโ during family meetings. Nobody trusts my opinion, let alone asks for it. Carterโs mother, Elmyra, has always been distant and indifferent to me. She treats me like an outcast and every time she approaches me I get nervous. Her hair is always perfectly done up; her makeup and clothes flawless. She is an intimidating woman and she often makes me feel small. She knows exactly what to say to cut deeply too. โI suppose you are happy riding my sonโs coat tails the rest of your life? What purpose do you serve if you canโt give him an heir?โ โItโs probably for the best, dear. As an orphan, you wouldnโt know the first thing about being a mother anyway.โ โI donโt know what my son was thinking when he decided to marry you. You arenโt strong enough to be the lady of this family.โ But I know I can rely on Carter to protect me from her harsh words and actions when heโs around. He even defends me against his mother when she is hard on me. โI know you want to be a grandmother mom, but Hazel and I are happy. We will have a child when we are ready.โ Then he turns to me and kisses me on the forehead. I donโt know why Elmyra hates me so much. It makes me feel bad about myself, like I will never be good enough for her son. But, from now on, everything is going to change. Even Elmyra will have to start treating me better once she hears the news. I have a husband who adores me, a beautiful home and now, after years of trying, a new addition on the way to make our family complete. Me, an orphan, finally getting a real family to call her own. Just then Carter walks out of the bedroom looking as handsome as ever with his dark blonde hair, piercing blue eyes and chiseled jaw. โMorning, babe. Whatโs for breakfast?โ Carter asks as he strolls into the kitchen. He kisses me on the cheek and lightly squeezes my wrist as he walks past me to get his coffee. โEggs and bacon,โ I reply with a giggle. We eat our breakfast in companionable silence. I cherish every moment alone with my husband. I donโt care what his mother or his other relatives think. I just want his approval. The one person who has truly loved me and been there for me in my life. While Iโm standing at the sink washing dishes, I feel a presence behind me suddenly. Something cold and heavy is placed on my heart. I look down at the most beautiful diamond necklace Iโve ever seen. It has a big cushion cut stone in the center and smaller stones wrapping up the sides of the necklace. โCarter! What is this for?โ I ask breathlessly. โFor being so beautiful,โ he replies. He leads me over to a mirror on the wall and I gasp in surprise. โItโs stunning,โ I say in awe. โTonight Iโd like you to wear it to dinner with that short black dress I like. And, when we get back Iโd like you to wear only this,โ he says suggestively. โYes, sir,โ I say softly. I tip my head back to allow him access to my lips. He kisses me deeply and caresses my body and I lean into him. โI wish I could stay in bed all day with you, but this meeting is important,โ he moans and steps back. โI will be waiting for you,โ I say with a coy look. โWhat would I do without you? You are the love of my life,โ he replies. He gives me another quick kiss and then heโs headed towards the door. I sigh happily, thinking about how much Iโm going to miss him today. We had already planned on going out to dinner, but now it's going to be special. I will tell him Iโm with child tonight and surprise him. Out of the blue, my phone rings. I see that itโs my best friend, Lillian. Iโve been so focused on being the perfect wife for Carter that Iโve lost touch with many of my friends. But Lilian is different. She knows everything about Carter and me. She knows how my mother-in-law and the other family members treat me. She has always been there for me. She knows what to say to make me feel better about anything. -[โHi, Hazel. How are you?โ]- she asks. โIโm doing ok,โ I say. -[โYour voice doesnโt sound ok. Spill it.โ]- โItโs nothing, just had a visit from Elmyra.โ -[โYou really shouldnโt put up with her crap, Hazel. Talk to Carter about it, maybe he can get her to lay off.โ]- โI appreciate that but I think that will just make me look weak to her. Sheโs a complicated woman,โ I say. -[โSheโs a shrew,โ]- Lillianโs sarcasm makes me laugh. โSpeaking of which, I have to get ready for this afternoon tea so she doesnโt have my head. Talk later?โ I ask. -[โSo youโll be gone all afternoon?โ]- โYes, unfortunately. These ladies love to drone on about family traditions,โ I reply and then add, โWhy, do you need something?โ -[โNo, Iโm ok. I was going to ask you to lunch but another time. Iโm always here for you Hazel so if it gets too much give me a call.โ]- โThank you. You are such a great friend,โ I reply warmly. I hang up with Lillian and feel a pang of regret. Iโm going to make it a priority to dedicate more time to our friendship. My day is over quickly. The tea goes very well and I decide to head home early. Usually, Iโd follow the women back to Elmyra's house for dinner. I always want to be part of them. But this time, Iโm very tired. I walk into our apartment and set my bag on the counter. I hum to myself, excited about seeing Carter soon. I start to walk into the kitchen when I hear a noise. It sounds like a moan. I stop what Iโm doing instantly. Fear creeps up my spine. I make my way back towards the sound and I hear it again. Then I hear a bang noise and I almost jump out of my skin. My heart is pounding and my legs feel shaky. Something is wrong. I know it in my gut. I start to push the door open slowly and it makes a small creaking sound. What I see makes me gasp. A woman is grinding on top of Carter and heโs moaning. He grabs her groin and looks up at her adoringly. I feel like someone has just ripped my heart out. My breathing becomes erratic. I start to panic. My knees feel like jello. I clutch the door frame for support. How could he do this to me?! This man who said I was the love of his life just this morning! This man who gave me a beautiful necklace and told me he hated leaving me! Just then, the woman turns to me with an evil grin. Like sheโs enjoying making me watch in horror. I canโt believe my own eyes. I draw shaky breaths as tears fall down my face. My heart pounds mercilessly as I lock eyes with Carterโthe man Iโve once loved, now a mere stranger before me. Everything I thought I knew about my husband. About my life. Destroyed in an instant. The sight before me shocks me to my core. Lillian and Carter. In our bed. Making love. Chapter 2: The man who says he loves me in the morning is now making love with my best friend. Carter's hands roam over Lillian's underdressed body, his lips trailing feverish kisses along her neck, while Lillian's laughter echoes in the room like a cruel taunt. My throat constricts. I want to curse, to scream, to lash out at them with every ounce of fury burning inside me. But my voice fails me, lost in a desert of despair. Finally, Carter and Lillian notice my presence, their affection abruptly extinguished like a candle snuffed out by a gust of wind. My tears fall unchecked now, hot and bitter against my cheeks. Carter scrambles to his feet, hastily pulling on his clothes. โWhy are you here?โ he asks. Lillian remains on the bed, a smirk playing at the corners of her lips, her gaze cold and calculating. She revels in my agony, relishing the destruction she has wrought. โItโs not what you think it is,โ Carter says. My heart shatters into a million jagged pieces. I need to get out of here! I clutch at my ventricle, willing my heart to keep beating. Carter catches up to me, his hand reaching out to touch my arm, but I recoil from his touch as if burned. "Hazel, letโs talk," he demands, his voice raw with emotion. But I shake my head, my resolve hardening with each passing moment. โTalk about what?โ My voice is a mere ghost of its former strength. โAbout how you slept with my best friend behind my back?โ Now, I'm left shattered, questioning every moment of intimacy with Carter, every laugh shared with Lillian. Was it all a facade, a cruel illusion of love and friendship? The pain is unbearable, the disbelief suffocating! I make it back to our house after a hazy drive. I ascend to the master bedroom, my movements fueled by a desperate need to escape. With trembling hands, I begin to pull out my clothes and belongings from the cabinets and drawers, stuffing them haphazardly into a suitcase. I donโt care how messy it looks, donโt care about anything except getting away from all of it! "Whatโs gotten into you this time?" Elmyra calls out, breaking through the haze of my grief. I turn to her, standing in the doorway, her eyes narrowed, her jaw clenched. Her aura exudes mockery and arrogance. I manage to choke out, "Iโm leaving." Elmyra hisses, as if wanting to curse at me. But before she can speak again, I brush past her, down the stairs and flee from the house, my suitcase clutched tightly in my numbing hands. I steady my breath, then climb into my car and start the engine, the roar of the motor drowning out the tumultuous thoughts swirling in my mind. I drive without direction; my subconscious takes control of the steering wheel and leads me to the only place I may feel safe - my parents' house. Mama is actually waiting for me at the threshold, Iโm overwhelmed that I ignore the fact why she knows Iโm coming. I walk in the doorway and papa, whoโs reading a paper, frowns and asks, "Why do you look like that?โ I sink onto the sofa, struggling to hold back my sobs. "What happened?" Mama perches on the edge of the sofa, her hand reaching out to brush away the tears that are staining my cheeks. I take a shaky breath, my heart constricting with pain. "I caught Carter and Lillian...together." I thought I'd have my parentsโ support. But then, to my horror, their expressions darken, a look of apprehension crossing their faces. "Hazel," mama begins, her tone accusatory. "What have you done wrong?" Mamaโs words suffocate me with its cruelty. โHe is cheating on meโ!That asshoโโ Slap! My head rears back from pain and shock. Papa just slaps me across the face! I hold my hand to my cheek. โGo back to Carter now, apologize for leaving, promise him that you won't do it again and that you'll stay by his side.โ From the looks on their faces, I realize that they don't care about Carter's cheating. Only that I have brought disgrace upon them. Mamaโs eyes are cold as she adds, "You must have done something wrong to cause Carter to cheat on you. Have you thought about what it would do to our family? Your brother's scholarship is still on Carter's dime. Your sister is about to out in the society and can't be dragged down by you. Now, do everything you can to not let Carter leave you.โ This is my parents, my adoptive parents. I grew up pleasing them and being the best student in school, but they never look at me. Being adopted at a young age will do that. You are so grateful to the people who have taken you in. You are terrified of making a mistake that they may send you back to the orphanage and decide to adopt another child. A child thatโs more obedient, smarter, better. So you bust yourself trying to make them proud of you. You stifle any part of yourself that may talk back or speak up. It wasn't until I married Carter that papa accepted me. The day we got married was the happiest day of my life. I thought mama and papa have considered me family all these years, now it turns out I was wrong. They don't care about me, at all. Papa says, "Have you had enough, I'm going to call Carter and have him bring you home. " I canโt take this anymore, this isnโt what Iโm here for! This place can't provide the safety or even the comfort I desperately need! I turn on my heels and storm out of the house with my suitcase in hands before they can react. Humiliated, despised, and helplessโฆ as I begin to acknowledge that I lost my husband and my family on the same day. Chapter 3: It all clicks. The late night calls, the flirtings, the unusual caring with Lillian - their chuckles in bed, my parents' coldness, Elmyra's sneers. My mind replays these scenes over and over again, like a broken record. I sit on the edge of the bed of the apartment I rented since last night, the weight of the world keeps pressing down on my shoulders. Just as Iโm sinking deeper into the darkness of my thoughts, my phone shatters the silence. I jolt as I wipe away my tears. My hand trembles slightly as I glance at the screen. Then, my jaw clenches in anger when I see the caller IDโLillian. โReally? You still have the guts to call me?โ I hiss. -["Listen, Hazel, it's evident where his heart lies, and frankly, your dramatics won't change that. Just gracefully accept the truth and move on, like any sensible person would."]- Lilian says in her sweet voice, without a hint of remorse or shame. -[โWe need to talk, Express Cafe, now.โ]- My grip on the phone tightens, my nails digging into my palm as I fight to keep my composure. I force my anger down, steeling myself for whatever lies Lillian is about to spin. "Fool me once" I say courageously, โIf you thinkโฆโ -[โDon't you want to know why and when your husband cheated on you?โ]- She's been my best friend long enough to know what will pinch me. She hangs up, the silence that follows echoing in the small apartment like a deafening roar. Express Cafe is just a few minutes' drive away. I slip into a corner booth and wait, quickly smooth concealer around my swollen eyes, as I watch the door with bated breath. Lilian comes in blushing like a woman in love, and ironically, her love has turned out to be mine. An awkward silence ensues and we stare at our respective coffee cups for a while. โWhy, Lillian?โ I finally ask. "Hazel, you need to face the truth. Carter loves me, not you. He's only with you because he wants an heir, a baby. Once he gets what he wants from you, he'll leave you for me." "Is that so?" I ask, my voice trembling slightly despite my best efforts to maintain my composure. A very faint smile plays at the corners of Lilianโs lips that she tries so hard to hide by tilting her head down as she reaches into her bag and produces her phone. With a few taps of her finger, she turns the screen towards me, revealing a string of text messages between her and Carter. "He's been seeing me behind your back, Hazel," Lilian says, her voice holding a tinged of a smug satisfaction. "He's been telling me everything. How he can't stand being with you, how he's only staying with you for appearanceโs sake. He's using you, and you're too blind to see it." My breath dries in my throat as I read the messages. The Carter in the text messages is nothing like the husband I knew. I can tell by his texts that he is happy, which makes my heart ache even more. โBut what does that have to do with why you betrayed me? You were my best friend,โ I say, trying not to show how much these messages hurt me. โAt first we were friends, but then I realized I could never really respect you. The way you let people walk all over you...Iโm sorry but itโs just pathetic. And then I stayed close to you so I could be near Carter,โ she replies. โHe never loved you, Iโm always his true love. He met me first. โ she continues. I swallow a lump in my throat and quietly take a deep breath. โHow long has this been going on?โ I ask. โPretty much since the beginning. A few months into your marriage, maybe,โ she says without remorse. My head is reeling with the idea that Carter has been cheating on me for so long. Iโm shocked that Lillian has such a mean streak. Sheโs never my friend to begin with. How could I have let these kinds of people into my life, into my heart? Just then I hear the door jingle, prompting me to look up. To my shock, Carter appears. โYou called Carter?โ I ask Lillian in a horrified tone. โYou two really need to talk. You need to think about your life choices, accept the reality and it's good for all of us.โ she replies snidely. She gets up to leave and Carter takes her place in the opposite chair. "Come home with me. We had a good time, didn't we? We can still live the life we had before. Itโs not like you donโt enjoy the things we do together,โ he says. He tries to run his hand up my arm but I slap him away. โDonโt touch me. I only enjoyed them when I thought I was the only one you were doing it with!โ I whisper between my gritted teeth. "I'm the only one who can stand you in bed, you know how boring you used to be in bed? I made you moan over and over. You know you still want me..." He stares at me with those cold eyes. The eyes I once loved. Heโs finally stopped pretending. Itโs all been an act. I see that now. Carter changes his personality to suit his needs. He manipulates people to get what he wants. He manipulated me before and heโs trying to do it again! I say nothing, trying to keep my anger in check. โI donโt know why you are fighting this so hard. Most women would die to be in your place. Theyโd be very happy to get even the tiniest scrap from me,โ He pauses, waiting for my reply. But I keep my silence. โYou agreed to my terms. I have your signature on the prenuptial agreement to prove it. So get over yourself and fulfill your duty to me. Then you can go on about your sad little life, while I rise to the top and make my family proud,โ he boasts. โDid you ever love me?โ I ask. "Love is too strong of a word.โ He laughs out loud as if he has heard something ridiculous. โYou have good breeding, your parents assured me like you would be an obedient wife, and all along you've done well. Why don't you keep it up? Come home now, before I run out of patience." Heโs never loved me. His tone reminds me of the new racehorse he bought last month. A new, premium racehorse, presentable, brings him victories and can be bred to produce foals again. He never sees me as a wife, or even as a person. โNot a chance,โ I say proudly. โRemember your prenup? If you don't bear me children, you will be ruined. Your family will be in debt for the rest of their lives. Don't you dare try to leave me.โ His pupils dilate like that of a wild animal's, and he chokes me with his hand. I can barely breathe, I can feel heโs serious about hurting me, this man I had loved is literally taking my breath away. โIโm leaving you, one way or anotherโฆ." With what strength I have left I try to remove his hand and finish the sentence with the last of my breath. My peripheral vision sees that people are already whispering and looking over at us, and some even take out their phones and start taking pictures of us. โHow are youโฆโ He growls, low and dangerous. He notices the look in the crowd's eyes, and I'm betting he wonโt dare make a scandal like domestic scandal in public if he wants to remain reputable. He stares at me with anger in his eyes. He then lets go and I can finally breathe heavily. I cough, calling his bluff. He finally breaks the stare and leaves in a huff. The look on his face is absolutely worth it. I may have to pay the consequences later. But for now, I feel free for the first time in my life. I will leave Carter, no matter the cost. Chapter 4: Read your contract - This should be on my tombstone. I dug out my prenup from when papa told me not to worry about anything, that they would protect me and all I had to do was sign it, and so I did. But now, I realize that every conditioning of this prenup is working against me. My parents sold me into marriage, and theyโll be furious with me for getting a divorce. Theyโll be bankrupt and vulnerable to attacks without Carterโs protection. โIf you want a divorce, you wonโt get a penny from me. You will no longer be under my protection. Think twice, Hazel.โ Those are Carter's words, which are burned in my memory. I just wanna brush off the agreement and his threat by not thinking too much about them. But then, they start to haunt me, making me understand the realness of it all. Escaping isnโt a possibility, and Carter proves thatโฆ The rain pours as I stand on the doorstep of my rented house, the water mingles with the tears I try so hard to hold back. โYour husband's men took your car. I was about to tell you while theyโre here so you can talk to them about it, but theyโre so aggressive and I got scared that they may hurt me,โ my landlord says. A rush of anger and helplessness courses through me as I stare at the empty space of the parking lot where I last left my car. As if thatโs not enough for Carter, he adds another unwanted surprise for me. โAlso,โ the landlord begins, pity and fear etched across her wrinkled face. "Your husband called through the cellphone of one of his men. He threatened me, said he'd ruin my business if I don't evict you. So.., I can't keep the house rented to you anymore.โ The world seems to tilt, the ground shifting beneath my feet. "B-but, I have nowhere to go. Besides, I need time to find a new place." The landlord shakes her head, her face stern. "I can't risk it. The young Whitlock has too much influence. I can't afford to be caught in whatever marital problem you have." I wanna protest again, but sheโs right. Carter may put her in a difficult situation like heโs doing to me now, and I donโt wanna be the reason for it. With a heavy heart, I pack my things, and drag myself and my suitcase out into the storm. I then head to the nearest hotel. Without cash, I rely on my credit cards. The clerk at the front desk shakes his head as he hands back my credit card to me. "I'm sorry, Mrs. Whitlock. Your card has been declined." My cheeks burn with shame. "Can you try again, please?" The clerk tries again,... and beep! Declined, again! Maybe this hotelโs POS machine isnโt working - at least thatโs what I wanna believe in, though deep down, my inkling is telling me something else. I walk to another hotel, and approach the front desk, my hands shaking as I present my credit card. "I need a room, please," I say, trying to keep my voice steady. To my surprise, without even taking my credit card, the clerk shakes her head. "I'm sorry, Mrs. Whitlock. We can't help you." โWhy?โ I ask with a little frustration. The manager, who looks uncomfortable, comes to the clerkโs rescue, and answers, โMr. Carter Whitlock has banned you from our hotel." Youโve got to be kidding me? Where would I go now? Thereโs no refuge for me now. Carterโs reach is far and his influence powerful, making sure Iโm isolated, vulnerable. Heโs trying to force me back, cutting me off financially, stripping away my options. Soon I will be in debt and poor, which isnโt good, especially that Iโm now going to be a mother. I have to find a way out of this, and the only temporary solution I can think of is to pawn my pearls and earrings for some cash. I quickly head to a pawnshop, and its owner eyes me as I lay my jewelry on the counter. "I need to cash these," I say. He picks up the pearls, turning them over in his hands, his eyes narrowing as he glances at my suitcase. "You left home?โ โY-yes, and itโs hard to find a place to stay. My credit cards have been declining, so I need cash.โ The owner smirks as he says, โNice pieces, but I can't give you much for them. Market's down, you see." My heart sinks. I know heโs lying, taking advantage of my desperation. But what choice do I have - haggling? Then what? Get another rejection? I donโt wanna face with that. "How much?" I ask, bracing myself. He names a figure thatโs insultingly low, but I nod, swallowing my pride and the bitter taste of defeat. "I'll take it." At least I have money that'll last for a few days if I spend it wisely. Thatโs what matters for now. He counts out the bills with deliberate slowness while his eyes on me, a predator sensing vulnerability. When he finally hands over the money, I grab it. But I have to stay in the lobby for a moment, waiting for the rain to stop. Suddenly, my eyes flicker on the TV thatโs currently showing a flash news with a caption; โThe Divorce of the Centuryโ. The wife, once vilified by the town, now stood vindicated by Marius Thorne, the town's most revered lawyer. โMarius Thorne,โ I echo. Marius Thorneโs image flashes on the screen, a vision of confidence and success. His gold eyes, piercing, enchanting even. According to the news, he's a partner at the biggest law firm in town and he never loses in court. โHe may be who I need,โ I murmur to myself, excitement surging within me. Once the rain stops, I begin searching for a new place to stay. With newfound determination and what little cash I have, I find refuge in a cramped flat that doesn't check documents. The landlord, a cold and distant old lady, lays down the rules; no pets allowed, no men allowed, before disappearing from my sight. In this tiny room, my troubled heart finally quiets down. For now, Iโm safe, hidden from Carter's relentless pursuit. Through G****e, I search the name โMarius Thorneโ, and quickly call the numbers on the law firm profile heโs working with. After a few rings, a female voice echoes from the other end of the line. -[โCounsel Commanders Law Firm, how can we help you?โ]- โHi! Iโm filing for divorce and I need to make an appointment with Marius Thorne, is he available to speak with?โ Chapter 5: Divorce is never as easy as I thought it would be. -[โIโm calling to inform you that Mr. Thorne has decided to NOT take your case. We can recommend good divorce lawyers if neededโฆ.โ]- The womanโs tone is cool and reserved over the phone. Confusion clouds my thoughts, and questions race through my mindโwhy would he turn me away? Is he busy? Or does he find my case not worthy of his time? I quickly rush to the law firm, hoping to personally meet and talk to Marius Throne, but Iโm told by his secretary that appointments with Marius Throne are currently lined up for a month from now. So, heโs busy. Even so,... Iโm still hoping that heโll have a change of heart and accept my divorce case if only he can understand my situation. Itโs a good case, hard case to be exact - my prenup agreement is harsh and my husband was caught cheating red-handed. This may pique his interest. The bustling lobby seems to shrink in an instant as I, lost in my thoughts, collide with someone in a sharp, tailored suit. I stumble back, instinctively apologizing. "Oh, I'm so sor-!" But when the man speaks, I freeze mid-apology. "Hazel?" he says, his voice a mix of surprise and recognition. My brow furrows as I stare at him, trying to place the familiar handsome face. Then, it hits me. "Leslie?!" I exclaim, my confusion giving way to excitement. "It's nice to see you again!" Leslie returns my smile, his eyes lighting up with warmth. "It's nice to see you again too." My mind trips me back to our high school days, the laughter, the secrets shared, which were overshadowed by the years of silence that followed my marriage to Carter. "Itโs been a long time,โ I say. โWhat are you doing in a place like this?" A proud smile tugs at Leslie's lips as he proudly gestures around the lobby. "I work here as a Senior Legal Associate." Senior Legal Associate? - I echo inwardly with awe. Quickly, a glimmer of possibility shines through my uncertainty! And when Leslie asks the question back to me, I know I have to seize the opportunity. โHow about you, what are you doing here?โ In a heartbeat, I reply, "I'm divorcing my husband, and I need to talk to Attorney Thorne now. His secretary said he has many cases lined up for him. But heโs my only hope. Can you help me meet him, please?" As I wait for his response, I look into his eyes, praying for a lifeline. โMr. Thorne is a troublesome boss, difficult to work with, and even harder to persuade,โ he says. My stubbornness refuses to let doubt cloud my determination. Iโm desperate. Despite the warning signs, I press on, my resolve unshaken. "Just let me talk to him. Then I'll decide whether I still want to trust my case to him or not... please?" Leslie's smile turns brittle. "Alright. I'll try to talk to him first about you. Follow me." I follow Leslie, then wait outside one of the doors that are lining the corridor as I watch him disappear into the room. I hope Leslie's charm will be enough to sway Marius Thorne, to at least grant me a chance to plead my case. And maybe, just maybe, if I can make him understand, I can turn the tide in my favor. After a moment of agony, Leslie finally emerges from the room, his smile radiant as he meets my eager gaze. โYou may now go in,โ he announces, his voice tinged with excitement. My heart leaps with anticipation, and I can't help but squeal with delight. With a grin, I say, โThank you so, so much!โ I waste no time in crossing the threshold into the room. As I close the door, my eyes quickly fall upon Marius Thorne behind the mahogany desk. Heโs tall and heโs impeccably handsome too, more so than Leslie and even Carter himself. Clad in a printed suit, he exudes an air of impassiveness that sends chills down my spine. His jawline is sharp, his gold eyes are more piercing in person than they were on TV, and his dark hair perfectly groomed. Mariusโ voice is devoid of emotion just like his expression. "My secretary and Leslie told me that youโre planning to divorce your husband, Carter of the Whitlock Family.โ Surprised, I ask, "You know my husband?" Is Marius Thorne turning me off because of my husband? He dodges my question, and delivers his verdict instead. "I have a full schedule for the rest of the year to take on new cases. I can recommend good divorce lawyers to you If you need..." Disappointment and frustration foam in my heart, my hands clenching to my sides. "Is there anything I can do to change your mind?" Marius remains unmoved. Without a tiny hint of second-thought, he crashes me with a one-word answer, โNone.โ Pride becomes my shield from rejection. Iโve walked away from anyone where Iโm unwanted. I did that from Carter and his family, from my parents, God, I can just walk away from this stranger too! With a forced smile, I turn to the door. But just as I reach the threshold, a hand grips my wrist with unexpected force. Then, Carter's angry face looms over me. I struggle to maintain my balance. "Carter, let go of me!" I demand, my voice trembling with fear and defiance. โWhat do you think youโre doing here?!โ he asks back, his face red with beasty fury. Carter drags me aggressively. I try to get rid of him, shoving my wrist from his iron grip, but his strength is overpowering. Finally, we reach the lobby, where curious eyes watch our confrontation unfold. Carter releases my wrist, but my humiliation doesn't end there. In a voice sharp and cold, he unleashes a torrent of threats that makes my blood run cold. "I own half of this law firm. When my wife came to my firm looking for a divorce lawyer, You think I wouldn't notice that?โโ" My eyes widen in surpriseโฆ thatโs news to me. Carter pinches my hand and says, โYou didn't really think that you could find a lawyer who would dare take you on, did you?โ My mind goes blank, could this be the reason why Marius Thorne kept refusing me? Is there any other divorce attorney in town who will take my case? Whoโs not scared of Carter? Carter grabs my arm once again. โStop defying me! You canโt just waltz out of our marriage without consequences. Didnโt I already make sure you know that? The hardship youโre going through now is just the tip of the iceberg of what else I can do to you." I try to let go myself, but itโs no use, Carter is much stronger than I am. He then tightens his grip on me, which prompts me to hiss in pain. โCarter, please,โ I beg. Carter parts his lips, but before he can continue his tirade, a pair of hands intervenes, grasping both my arm and his. I look up, and see Marius standing before us. | LEARN_MORE | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&u | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | redtgb.com | VIDEO | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/453328750_795902869195935_506455412142241469_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=kmSFj4E77ScQ7kNvgG90eCl&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=ABPwkCq691JLqdHhVoqj7W9&oh=00_AYBwiL0Zh0HaBUDygrSYtLOW3ncunOH6WmbcbIGrwMNgOA&oe=672FF12A | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,552 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312545}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 |
|
๐ฅ๐ฅClick to read the next chapter for free๐ | Two years of marriage, and I'd never set foot in my husband Elijah's office. Today was the first time I went to his company. After all this time, why was I suddenly entrusted to deliver these important documents? Could it be possible that theyโre finally learning to accept me? Taking a deep breath, I gently placed my hand on my stomach. The emptiness from losing my baby lingered, even though it had been a long time since that accident. I still felt lost and fragile, wishing for solace that never came. I missed my husband's presence, longing for a comforting word or touch. But he and his family remained distant and uninvolved, leaving me to recover on my own. Now, I was about to step into Elijahโs world โ his beloved company. My heart skipped a beat as I entered Elijah's large, elegant office. The room was tastefully decorated, with rich mahogany furniture and a large sign that said Sinclair Realty Group. But what made me stop in my tracks was the sight of my husband huddled with an attractive blonde over some papers. Their shoulders were touching, their cheeks almost brushing against each other. What is going on? I thought in alarm. Suddenly, the woman whispered something in Elijahโs ear while she gently laid her perfectly manicured hands on his arm. My heart jumped. I heard a loud thud on the floor and realized Iโd dropped the folder I was holding. They both looked up, startled. And thatโs when my gaze locked with that of the woman. I felt a shudder creeping through my skin. Serena Foster! She used to be a classmate of ours at Fairview University. She also happened to be Elijahโs ex-girlfriend. The realization hit me like a ton of bricks. So this is why my evil mother-in-law asked me to deliver this document! Morgana had probably known that Serena was here now. My husband rose from his chair, abruptly pulling away from Serena who was throwing me daggers with her eyes. โYou remember Serena, right? She works here now.โ I nodded, my heart leaping into my throat and my thoughts raging in a storm. Theyโre just colleagues, nothing else, I thought, but not with full conviction. Elijah wouldnโt cheat on me, would he? All this time, Iโd remained hopeful that he could still fall in love with me. But now, with Serena in the picture, time might just be running out for us. โSo why are you here?โ Elijah asked, a frown creasing his brow. โYour mom asked me to deliver this,โ I explained, hastily picking up the folder and handing it to him. Then narrowing my eyes at Serena, I waited for him to explain why they were working closely, or to at least introduce me as his wife. But much to my dismay, he didnโt. It felt as though my heart was being squeezed tightly, as it dawned on me that heโd never really introduced me to anyone as his wife. Ever. โSophia, you look shaken up. Didnโt you know Elijah hired me to work here?โ Her voice dripped with sarcasm. โApparently, we make a great team. Funny, I donโt recall seeing you here before.โ She was purposely rubbing it in my face, and I wanted to slap that smile away from her face. She then added, โOh, right, you donโt know anything about business. You might just mess things up.โ โI take care of our home,โ I said bitterly, looking down on the floor for a bit. I felt belittled, and my husband couldnโt even defend me. Serena looked at me with disbelief and laughed. Just then, Elijah said, โNext time, Sophia, just contact me and Iโll have my assistant come over.โ "Fine," I murmured, my voice barely audible, wishing the ground would swallow me up. The weight of hurt and embarrassment pressed down on me, crushing my spirit. My heart thudded as I blinked back tears. He doesn't want me here. Suddenly, Elijahโs secretary came in. โAlice, please prepare coffee for the ladies,โ he instructed. โJust black for Serena. No sugar.โ Serenaโs eyes lit up. โHey, you remembered!โ she exclaimed, obviously delighted. Elijah nodded at her. โOf course.โ I watched the exchange with a sinking feeling in my heart. Serena gave me a smug look as if she was reveling in some secret victory. I couldnโt help but feel more depressed. Here was my husband, effortlessly remembering Serena's coffee preferences, yet he couldn't recall something as simple as my allergy to caffeine. โJoin us, Sophia,โ Serena invited with a devilish grin. โJust like how we used to hang out together in college.โ I struggled to contain my emotions, not wanting to break down in front of them. โI have to go,โ I managed to say, my voice slightly cracking. โIโll see you at home.โ Elijahโs expression remained unchanged, and my heart felt heavy with the realization of how little I meant to him. The way he treated me had only gotten worse after losing my baby. What did you expect? a small voice hissed in my head. He only married you because he got you to have a baby. Youโre the one who keeps hoping heโll eventually fall for you. As his assistant Connor Hayes drove me home, I thought about how my husbandโs mother Morgana had begun ignoring me after I lost the baby. Then one day, she started talking to me again, only to treat me like a housemaid. I fought back tears as the heaviness in my heart escalated. My marriage was falling apart so fast that I couldnโt seem to catch up. When we pulled up the spacious driveway of the Sinclair mansion, a feeling of dread and loneliness engulfed me. Iโm back in this prison. Trapped. Helpless. I want to escape this prison! I screamed in my head, glad that Morgana was nowhere to be found. Yet. Running to my room and throwing myself on my bed, sobs wracked my body. And as I cried my eyes out, I felt something with my hand that made me sit up. A small portion of a brown envelope was peeking from under the pillow. My heart tightened, and more tears filled my eyes. I knew exactly what it contained โ the papers Iโd prepared before. I pulled them out and stared at the title that blurred before my teary eyes. It read: Divorce Agreement. CHAPTER 2 The divorce agreement was written after I accidentally lost my baby. During that time, I couldnโt even look at Elijahโs face without thinking about our baby. The pain was unbearable, so I believed divorce was my salvation. Looking back, preparing the divorce agreement was not a mistake, now that leaving was my only option. My hands shook as I held the papers in my hand. I could hear Morganaโs voice outside. โSophia!โ she called in a sharp tone. She probably heard me come in and was now wondering where I was. Quickly, I hid the divorce agreement and washed my face in the bathroom. Thatโs when the door swung open. I dried my face with a towel and looked at my mother-in-law. She responded with a cold gaze. She immediately instructed me to do the housework, her tone full of disdain. As I began my chores, she stood there taunting me. โElijah told me not to ask you to deliver things in the future,โ she said with a scoff. โYou canโt even be relied on for such a simple task.โ Her words cut deep. โWhen you first came to our house carrying a baby in your belly, it was okay that you couldn't do anything,โ she continued. โThen you had lost your baby and you had to spend months recovering and regaining your health. Now you can't even deliver a document, so what's the meaning for Elijah of having you as a wife?" Her words were like daggers, each one piercing my heart. And then, in a cruel twist, she added, โMy son would be better off with Serena. She's prettier, smarter, and she even managed to land a job at his company! Unlike you... You can't even perform simple housework that well.โ Sure enough, she already knew that Serena worked at Elijah's company. She asked me to deliver the papers today just to make a fool of me. The room felt suffocating, the burden of her words pressing down on me. I felt utterly alone, realizing that no one had ever been on my side. I clenched my fists, struggling against the wave of tears threatening to spill. Sweeping the floor became a mechanical task, a facade to hide my turmoil. The repeated humiliations and frustrations drained me of the energy to fight back or explain myself yet again. I donโt deserve this, I thought sourly. Itโs time for me to escape, to save myself. With bitter tears streaming down my cheeks, I rushed to my room and grabbed the papers Iโd hidden. Staring at me from the front page were the words: Divorce Agreement. Iโve had enough. Flashbacks of how Elijah and Morgana had been treating me filled my mind. Despite my efforts to be the dutiful wife and daughter-in-law, Iโd always seemed invisible to them. Iโve been obedient, helpful, and hardworkingโฆ But no one cares. Not even my own husband. Iโm nothing to him. He doesnโt love me and he never learned to. Thatโs the most painful of all. My heart tightened. His indifference cut deeper than any overt cruelty could. And now, with Serena back in the picture, their attention gravitated toward her. I felt more isolated than ever. This is the last straw! I must get out of here, or Iโll lose my sanity! That evening, I hadnโt realized Iโd already fallen asleep when I heard the bedroom door open. Something made a loud, clattering noise. I quickly sat up and saw Elijah staggering toward me. He mumbled something about a dinner party as he plopped on the bed and started sliding his fingers down my bare arm. I hastily moved backward, giving him a look of disbelief. He was obviously drunk. If he wasnโt, he would have just ignored me and gone straight to bed. โHey, playing hard to get, arenโt you?โ he said in a slurred manner, his bloodshot eyes becoming more intense. Then without warning, he leaned forward and kissed me on the lips. I didnโt have time to react, though, because he suddenly started unbuttoning my oversized nightshirt. โWhen did Serena start working at your company?โ I asked him coldly. He shrugged, but didnโt stop what he was doing. โNot sure. Probably recruited by HR.โ His lips traveled down and then his tongue followed. Finally, the last button on my sleep pajama surrendered. โSerena is such a talented addition to our team,โ he remarked with admiration. As I reminisced about the scene I witnessed at the company, my husband and his ex-girlfriend Serena were closely nestled together, sharing laughter and conversation. But I couldn't muster the courage to confront her and ask her to keep her distance from him. Jealousy and pain gripped my chest. I couldnโt believe he was saying all this while undressing me! I knew then that he still had feelings for her. โYou know,โ he said, oblivious to my disappointment, โshe's even outperforming many of the senior colleagues who've been with the company for years.โ Even as we locked eyes, there was something in his gazeโa kind of infatuationโthat he never seemed to exhibit when it came to me. Heโs probably picturing me as her! I thought with disgust. I was so disappointed in him, and didnโt want him anywhere near me. But when I pulled away, he threw me an irritated look. โWhatโs wrong with you?โ he asked, taken aback that I was saying no to his advances unlike before. I didnโt answer. He narrowed his eyes at me. โYouโve been down in the dumps for months now! I thought youโd snap out of it, but youโve only gotten worse. Itโs depressing to even see you.โ I cringed at his words, the searing pain crushing my heart. He couldnโt even see how my spirit was being shattered because of him. โMaybe itโs because of the baby we lostโฆโ he mused. Sliding his fingers down the surface of my cheek and then my neck, he added in a drunken slur, โWhy donโt we just make another baby?โ I couldnโt believe my ears. I knew that whenever he was drunk, he spoke without inhibitions. He was often brutally honest in this state. Hence, he meant every word and that only showed how much he didnโt understand me or the problem we had in this marriage. My whole body was shaking as the misery and fury Iโve been keeping inside rose to the surface. He doesnโt get it. Or maybe he just doesnโt care. I was totally pissed off. And thatโs when I blurted it out. โI want to divorce you.โ CHAPTER 3 I could sense his mind reeling from the unexpected news. He opened his mouth as if to say something. I expected him to respond, to react, to ask questions. Anything at all! But he never said anything. My heart thumped hard as we gazed at one another โ strangers whoโd been forced to live together. I had tried so hard to make this marriage work even after we had lost the baby. But it takes two to succeed at this, I realized. โI want a divorce,โ I repeated, keeping my voice steady. โIโm serious.โ Slowly he nodded. โYes, sure,โ he answered before getting up and disappearing into the bathroom. My heart felt like it was about to explode. I pulled my open shirt around me, desperately covering myself up, as I coiled into a fetal position with my head throbbing. A tear dropped down my cheek, and I quickly brushed it away. This is it. Iโm going to be free. And yet somehow, I didnโt feel that ecstatic. His reaction only confirmed my worst suspicions. Now I know the truth โ he never loved me at all. Heโs not even upset about the divorce! I sighed. Itโs time for me to move on. The next day, after eating breakfast on my own, I mustered up all my courage and called Elijah to the study. โWe should sign this,โ I said without any emotion, showing him the divorce papers. He sat on the sofa across from me, looking at me quietly. His gaze always made me feel a little nervous, but today was different. I signed the papers and urged him to do the same. โElijah, please,โ I whispered, making sure my voice wouldnโt break. โLet's end this.โ His face contorted in a horrible expression as he ruthlessly grabbed the agreement from me. But he didnโt sign immediately. He took a long time going over each page while I waited impatiently. Then his phone suddenly rang. I saw it light up with Serenaโs name, making my heart tighten. I canโt believe this womanโs timing! But Elijah only glanced at it before returning to reviewing the papers. Perhaps he didnโt want to answer it because I was in the room with him. A myriad of emotions threatened to engulf me. I stood up and positioned myself in front of him with my arms crossed against my heart. โWhy donโt you just hurry up and sign those so you can get going? Someone might be waiting for you in the office.โ He glanced at me warily, then took out his pen and signed everything. With an angry grunt, he threw the papers down on the sofa and stormed out of the room. Watching him go, I was filled with overwhelming feelings โ relief, frustration, anger, sadness. โIโm finally free,โ I murmured to myself incredulously. While I was packing my bags in the bedroom, Morgana suddenly charged inside. In her usual bossy voice, she said, โThe morningโs almost over, Sophia! Go do the laundry now.โ With a sarcastic huff, I turned around to face her. โSorry, but Elijah and I just signed a divorce agreement. I will no longer do any housework for you.โ Her face reddened in anger. I could almost see steam coming out of her ears as she crossed her arms on her pit and scolded me angrily. "You married into our family for two years, no children, and now you want a divorce," she spat out bitterly. I scoffed, not bothering to respond. It doesnโt matter anymore. I can finally ignore her completely! But then, almost as quickly as her anger had surfaced, her mood changed. โYou know what? It's actually quite nice,โ she said, her tone almost mocking. โElijah can finally marry someone better, like Serina. Every single day that I see you hanging your head in despair, it just makes my blood boil. Anyone would make a better wife than you!โ Her words infuriated me. I wanted to slap away that haughty look on her face, but it would just be a waste of energy. Iโm done here. Iโm done with all this. Suddenly, memories flooded back of a time when Morgana had shown kindness, especially during my pregnancy with her grandchild. She had been caring and considerate. However, after I lost my baby, her demeanor changed drastically. She began treating me like a mere servant rather than a member of the family. I could never understand why she became so hostile all of a sudden. Sometimes I wondered if it had more to do with herself than with me. That afternoon, I went home to where I grew up. As I settled in, I felt relieved that at least I had a place I could call my own. โLuckily I hadnโt sold it,โ I muttered, looking around the living room and remembering my adoptive father. This house is the only connection I have left with him. Night swept in quickly. I was worn out and exhausted. Climbing onto my old bed, I was ready to relax when I received a message from my best friend Kayla. It showed a secretly taken photo of Elijah and Serena in a club, sitting intimately close and laughing together. A chill ran down my spine as I read the angry message from Kayla: That Elijah! You have no idea what I saw! Elijah was out partying and flirting with that Serena, which he never did with you! My heart sank, anger and sadness clouded my mind as I realized he was indeed getting back together with Serena and flaunting her around. Forcing back my tears, I told Kayla: Itโs over between me and Elijah. We were divorced. CHAPTER 4 โAaarrgghh! I so hate that guy for doing this to you!โ Kayla hissed. โIf I had known heโd treat you like that, I wouldnโt have allowed you to even come near him during our grad celebration! And I wouldnโt have kept pushing you to hook up with him, no matter how gorgeous he was!โ Being the daughter of Raven Mediaโs renowned CEO, Kayla Davis always hung out with high society. She saw Elijah a lot at parties since they belonged to the same circle. We also all happened to attend Fairview University where Kayla and I had majored in Interior Design. Hence, she not only knew Elijah but Serena too. โYou should have seen them at the party last night!โ she cried out, causing some people to give us a dirty look. Lowering her voice, she leaned forward with a repulsed look. โThey didnโt even care that I was there! They were justโฆ Aaahhh! I really couldnโt take it, so I went over there and gave them a piece of my mind. I told them they ought to be ashamed of themselves!โ โOh, wow,โ I uttered in disbelief. โBut itโs over now, Kayla. Iโm doing my best to move on.โ Kayla was still fuming. But then, she eventually smiled and leaned over to squeeze my hands. โIโm always here for you, Sophia. You know that.โ โThanks so much. Iโm really grateful to have someone who really cares about me,โ I responded with a fluttering heart. โWell, youโve always had my back even in high school. So now itโs my turn to return the favor.โ Kayla and I became best friends during our freshman year in high school. We came to know each other well when we first worked on an art project together. Weโd hit it off at once, and the rest was history. โAnyway, I can see that Elijah never loved you and he doesnโt deserve you, Sophia,โ she went on. โSo what are you planning now?โ โWell, Iโve been giving it some thoughtโฆโ I began, suddenly feeling excited for the future. โA few weeks ago, I applied for this postgraduate program at Goldwell Institute of Art in Franceโโ โYou did not!โ she interrupted me, her lips turning up into a huge grin. Suddenly, she jumped up from her seat and gave me a hug. โThis will surely be your big break!โ I laughed. โI havenโt been accepted yet, you know.โ โOh, but you will be!โ Kaylaโs enthusiasm was so contagious that I could already picture myself studying there, exploring France, and enjoying myself. But then, my mood suddenly changed again when I heard my phone ringing and saw Elijahโs name popping up on the screen. I froze up. Kaylaโs eyes narrowed when she saw it too. โGo ahead and answer it. See what he has to say.โ As soon as I accepted the call, I heard Elijahโs sharp tone of voice on the other end. โYou filed for our divorce, and now your family wants cash from me?! Unbelievable!โ โWait, what do you mean?โ โYou know Iโm busy in the office, then here comes your brother with another excuse for needing financial help! He had the nerve to barge into the conference room and disrupt our meeting!โ Elijah railed angrily. I felt mortified and helpless. โIโll talk to Troy.โ โGood. Make sure he doesnโt come back again ever.โ Then he hung up. I was so shocked that I couldnโt speak for a while. My family's constant demands for cash had reached a tipping point. No matter how many times I tried to set boundaries, they continued to use me and interrupt Elijah. It felt like I had no control over the situation, and it was greatly upsetting. โSorry I have to go now, Kayla,โ I said, bravely deciding to act immediately. She nodded in understanding and we said goodbye. I immediately rushed to the house where my adoptive mother and brother had moved to after my adoptive father Tom Bennett passed away. Heโd left me the original house where heโd taken care of me like his real own child. But the rest of the inheritance had been taken by his wife and son. Theyโd bought a bigger house and I never heard from them again. Not until they learned of my marrying a wealthy man in the famous Sinclair clan. Brenda was certainly not pleased to hear what I had to say. โWhat did you say?! You divorced Elijah, the billionaire CEO of Sinclair Realty Group?!! Are you out of your mind?!!โ Behind her, my brother Troy looked as if he wanted to punch the wall. โIt was never going to work out,โ I said, trying to maintain my composure. โJust please stop bothering him. Weโve cut our ties. You canโt ask for anything from him anymore.โ โOh, man!โ Troy exclaimed with frustration. Two years ago, after I married Elijah, Brenda and Troy came back and pretended like we were a tight-knit family. At first, Elijah was kind and understanding of their needs. But when he noticed how abusive they had become, always asking for financial support, he became impatient and angry. One time, they even borrowed cash in my name and never paid it back. It had become one of the reasons why Morgana was so angry with me. โDid you fight? Maybe you can still fix it!โ Brenda said, looking desperate. Troy scoffed. โWhen I went to his office, I saw him talking to this beautiful, sexy blonde. Iโm guessing thereโs a third party involved! People who donโt know better would think that woman is his wife!โ CHAPTER 5 My heart felt like it would explode any time now. โIt doesnโt matter,โ I eventually said to Troy. โItโs none of my business now. I donโt care what he does with that woman or with whomever.โ Then staring hard at him and my foster mother, I said sharply, โWeโre definitely not getting back together, so the two of you should just stop going to him for anything! Just stop!โ โButโฆโ Brenda began to protest. I raised my hand to stop her. โElijah and I are over. Besides, Iโll soon move to France and study there. And since you only contacted me again because of Elijahโs wealth, then now you wonโt have any more need for me, right?โ They were both shocked at my words because I had never spoken like that in the past. But it was time for me to step up and put myself first for once. โAll thing that you swindled out of my ex-husbandโs pocket, consider it as your payment for raising me,โ I went on in a steady voice. โWe donโt have to see or talk to each other ever again.โ On the way home, I began to feel a migraine coming. I closed my eyes and massaged my temples as I sat in the back seat of a cab. All of this dramaโs taking a toll on me, I guess. But as I neared the house, I felt increasingly queasy and unwell. I realized my health hadnโt fully recovered since the loss. โCould you please take me to the hospital?โ I asked the driver, trying to keep my voice steady despite the rising nausea. He nodded and quickly changed course, navigating toward the nearest medical facility. The ride felt endless, each bump in the road exacerbating my discomfort. By the time we arrived, I could barely contain the churning in my stomach. I burst through the hospital doors, a wave of dizziness threatening to overwhelm me. My vision blurred, and I stumbled forward, nearly colliding with a figure in front of me. Before I could hit the ground, strong hands gripped my arms, steadying me. Gasping for breath, I looked up and found myself staring into the concerned eyes of a very handsome and familiar-looking man. โAre you okay? You look like you're about to faint,โ he said, his brows furrowed with worry. With our eyes locked on each other, before I could even reply, a look of recognition crossed his features. โOh, wait! Itโs you. Sophia Bennett from Green Valley High, right?โ I was surprised, looking at him closely. His features reminded me of someone I knew a long way back. โUh, Daniel?โ I eventually said, recalling his name. We had gone to the same high school, but he was a year older than me. โYes, yes. Wait, let me bring you to our family doctor. You look really pale.โ I felt too sick to pretend I was fine, so I just let him lead me through the corridor and into one of the clinics. He quickly introduced me to the doctor whom he seemed to know well. As the doctor greeted me, concern etched across his face, I explained how I'd been feeling. He listened attentively, nodding as I spoke. After a brief discussion, he led me to an examination room, asking Daniel to wait outside. The examination was thorough, and I appreciated the doctor's calming demeanor. Afterward, he suggested some basic tests to determine the cause of my symptoms. โHow are you feeling now?โ Daniel asked kindly once I sat down beside him in the waiting area. โA little better, but still kinda dizzy,โ I answered honestly. โThanks for the assistance, but itโs okay if you have somewhere to be. Youโve already done too much for me.โ โOh, itโs okay,โ he said with a smile. โUnless you donโt want me here.โ โItโs nothing like that, of course!โ I quickly replied. โThanks for accompanying me. It feels good to have someone to talk to while Iโm here.โ โWell, Iโm all ears. People say Iโm a good listener.โ I beamed at him, his presence a comforting anchor in the sterile hospital environment. Chuckling, I said, โI donโt really know you, Danielโฆโ โYou know my name. Thatโs a start.โ His grin seemed to brighten up the surroundings, and I just felt immediately comfortable with him. I couldn't help but feel a sense of familiarity and trust wash over me. We hadn't been close in high school, but something about his calm demeanor and genuine concern made me want to open up. โI rememberโฆ Daniel Pierceโฆโ I began, smiling. I could feel my headache and nausea diminishing. โHigh school jock, but a bit geeky and always at the top of the class.โ He laughed. โYouโve got a good memory, Sophia Bennett. I remember you too โ the smart, quiet, very talented artist whom all the boys noticed but never had the nerve to approach.โ I laughed too at his astonishing description of me. โYouโre joking!โ โNo, itโs trueโฆ Really! Iโm sure youโve managed to get yourself a very good-looking husband. Let me guess, a CEO?โ He was kidding, but hitting close to home made me frown as I remembered Elijah. โGood-looking, yes. CEO, yes. But husband? Not anymore.โ โOh.โ His expression changed immediately. โIโm sorry to hear that.โ โYou know, it's been a rough few months,โ I began tentatively, twiddling my thumbs in my lap. โI'm actually going through a divorce, and my family... they keep asking for cash from my ex-husband, which just complicates things even more.โ Daniel's expression shifted to one of empathy, and he nodded, encouraging me to continue. โAnd then I lost my baby...It's been tough, physically and emotionally. I just feel like I'm carrying the weight of the world on my shoulders, you know?โ He nodded in understanding. โIโm so sorry to hear all that, Sophia. But you seem like a really strong woman. Iโm sure you can get back on your feet in no time. Usually, it helps to be in a change of environment. Have you considered that?โ โYeah, starting anew in a foreign land,โ I answered, thinking about my application in France. โHmmโฆ sounds like a pretty bold move," Daniel remarked, his eyes reflecting admiration and amusement at the same time. โIt takes courage to make such a big change.โ I smiled weakly. โActually, I've applied for graduate studies in France. It's something I've always wanted to do.โ Daniel's eyebrows shot up in surprise. โReally? That's incredible! I recently got accepted at the Goldwell Business School in Parisโฆโ My jaw dropped. โWhat? Iโm planning to go to the Goldwell Institute of Art!โ He looked at me with astonishment. โWhat are the odds, huh? Looks like weโll be seeing more of each other. Those institutions share practically the same campus.โ I couldn't believe the coincidence, though I was still feeling down. โThatโs reallyโฆ something else.โ โSurely youโll get in. Where do you plan to stay in Paris?โ โThe Latin Quarter, of course. Iโm looking at an apartment there, since itโs where most students live.โ Daniel chuckled. โAnd it looks like weโll be neighbors too. I think we were meant to cross paths again right now, right here.โ He gave me a lopsided grin. โWho knows? Maybe weโre destined to explore France together! When you book your plane ticket, let me know. Letโs fly together. I mean, if thatโs alright with you?โ His offer warmed my heart, and for the first time in a long while, I felt a glimmer of hope. โThank you, Danielโฆโ Suddenly, I heard my name being called by the assistant, motioning for me to come back into the clinic. โMiss Sophia Bennett?โ she informed me. โYour test results are here.โ CHAPTER 6 Daniel followed me into the doctor's office, providing support. The doctor smiled warmly at us, his expression giving nothing away. โWell, Sophia,โ he began, his tone measured, โthe results are in. Congratulations to you both.โ I felt a rush of confusion and disbelief. โYouโre going to be parents. Congratulations!โ the doctor added. Iโmโฆ pregnant?! How could that be? My last baby had left me only months ago. Even I just signed divorce papers with Elijah, and now I'm carrying his child? The room spun around me as embarrassment flooded my cheeks. Probably because he was mistaken for the baby's father, Daniel looked surprised but did not contradict the doctor. โOther than that, youโre perfectly healthy, Sophia,โ the doctor assured me. He went on to discuss some things with Daniel, but I hardly heard them talking. My heart pounded crazily, and my mind felt fuzzy. Once again, I felt like I was caught up in a weird dream. None of it was real. Daniel was quiet as we left the hospital. I didnโt know what to say either. โLet me drive you home, Sophia,โ he offered once we were outside. His eyes were filled with concern for me. I was just too tired and confused to say no, so I simply nodded. He did not ask any questions, and I was glad. What am I going to do? I asked myself in silence while in the car, feeling the panic rising in my throat. This is the worst timing ever. Elijah and I just got divorced, and Iโm supposed to have a whole new life ahead of me. Anxiety took over me. Everything was about to change again. If I have this baby, it wonโt have a father, I thought bitterly. And how can I take care of it on my own while living in a different country where I donโt have anyone to help me? My hand moved toward my tummy. There was no baby bump yet, but knowing that there was a little one growing inside gave me chills. Suddenly, I remembered how painful it had been to lose my baby before. This is a blessing, a second chance for me to become a mother. Would I want to risk losing another baby? Slowly I began to calm down. I took deep breaths until my head began to clear. This is a miracle, I told myself. I should be grateful. As I rubbed my belly, I spoke in my mind. Iโm so sorry, baby. Itโs just all too sudden. But I know that Iโm going to take care of you and love you with all my heart. Days flew by, bringing a welcomed calm without Elijah, Brenda, and Troy in the picture. However, internally, I remained in turmoil. Then, the news I had been eagerly awaiting arrivedโI had been accepted into my dream university to study art and design once more! Despite the uncertainty of juggling studies with a baby, I couldn't let this opportunity slip away. In just a weekโs time, I found myself waving goodbye to Kayla at the airport. โCall me when you get there!โ she said, her eyes gleaming with tears. It was the first time we would be apart for a long time, and we were like sisters. As I settled into my seat on the airplane, bound for Paris, excitement and nervousness mingled within me. The prospect of starting a new life in a different country threatened to overwhelm my senses. The plane began its ascent, lifting off the ground. I felt a wave of panic wash over me. Beside me, Daniel sensed my unease and reached over, gently squeezing my hand. โEverything will be okay,โ he reassured me. โI'm here. We'll do this together.โ His words were a comforting balm to my anxious soul, and I found great comfort in his presence. As we chatted throughout the plane ride, ate together, fell asleep, and then chatted some more, I began to relax and come to terms with the situation. I can do this, I thought with more confidence. Then touching my tummy, I silently whispered, Youโre my lucky charm, my baby. By the time we landed safely, Daniel and I were like old buddies. I was truly grateful that he was with me. As the cab wound through Paris, iconic landmarks flashed pastโthe Eiffel Tower dominating the skyline, the majestic Louvre in the distance, and quaint streets bustling with cafes and shops. Despite my worries, the beauty of the city had me momentarily elated, filling me with a sense of excitement and wonder. Beside me, Daniel seemed entranced, his eyes wide with wonder. Soon, we were unloading my bags at my new apartment. It was semi-furnished, and I was immediately drawn to the light blue walls and the inviting white sofa. But my favorite part of all was the large window that gave me a fantastic view of the busy city street below. This was itโthe start of my new life in Paris. I turned to Daniel, who was looking around the apartment with a satisfied smile. โLooks like you've got yourself a nice little place here,โ he remarked, glancing back at me. "Yeah, I think I'm going to like it here," I replied. Daniel chuckled. โJust remember to take it easy, okay? You've had a long journey.โ I rolled my eyes. โI'm fine, Daniel. I'm not going to keel over from exhaustion.โ He raised an eyebrow, and then grinned. โI'm just saying, youโll be too heavy for me to carry if you collapse!โ I threw the throw pillow at him jokingly. โOh, shut up.โ We both laughed. He added, โYou need to get some beauty sleep, Sophia. I'm sure you'll want to look your best when you meet your new classmates.โ โOh, so now you're concerned about my appearance?โ Daniel grinned. โHey, a little rest never hurt anyone. And who knows, maybe you'll meet a cute French guy who'll sweep you off your feet.โ I playfully nudged him. โI think I'll pass on that, thank you very much. I'm here to focus on my studies, not my love life.โ He appeared pleased with that statement. โFair enough,โ he answered with a teasing smile. โBut you never know what could happen. Paris is the city of love, after all.โ I felt a little flutter in my heart, wondering if I could learn to look at him as more than a friend. Perhaps it's more accurate to say he's akin to a brother rather than just a friend. The assistance he's provided far exceeds anything I've received from Elijah in years. Sighing, I went over to my bags. โCome on, just help me unpack already so we can check out your apartment next.โ As we were unpacking, my phone rang. I figured it was Kayla so I asked Daniel to answer it, showing him that my hands were full at the moment. โHello?โ I heard Daniel say. He put the call on speaker mode. โWho the hell is this? Where's Sophia?โ a very familiar male voice demanded, his tone aggressive and impatient. My heart felt like it had just plummeted to the ground. I felt my whole body trembling when Daniel handed the phone to me. I didn't have to hold the phone to my ear to hear Elijah's furious growling, "Sophia, YOU CAN'T just walk away like this! Where the hell are you now?! Without my permission, you are not allowed to go anywh...." I pressed the button to end the call without hearing his entire words, calming my quivering heart with a big and deep breath. It's true that Elijah has never been very considerate or tender with me, but he hasn't really stepped on me rudely either. It's just that lately, he's been indifferent to me. Anyway, he'd never been as emotionally cranky as he was now. Did my leaving make him care? No, don't be silly, Sophia, he can be with Serena again now. He's free. How do you expect that he would care about you, a woman he had never loved? Daniel noticed my paradoxical anxiety. "Who is he?" Daniel inquired. But I could see in his eyes that he clearly knew the answer to that question. I sighed, "My husband. No, ex-husband." | LEARN_MORE | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid= | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | thebvhwysgng.com | IMAGE | https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=12887&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/458290436_1543773089866021_5280363936572740768_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=109&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=xwT4rDhj5FIQ7kNvgGilNnW&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=ABPwkCq691JLqdHhVoqj7W9&oh=00_AYCkganc7fod0-hUicZwR_XwyMRpY9KqRp9uKTbMDz7JFA&oe=672FE4C3 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,554 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312542}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 | ๐Read the next chapters๐ | Chapter 1: PROLOGUE: Our three-year marriage is facing many challenges, and growing up as an orphan, who am I to expect anything better? My husband, Carter Whitlock, is everything Iโve ever dreamed of. Strong, kind, and fiercely devoted, heโs swept me off my feet from the moment we first met. In his arms, Iโve found solace and belonging. My mother-in-law, Elmyra, always has a disapproving gaze thatโs never far from my side. The other members of the Whitlock family, too, seem to regard me with suspicion and disdain, as if Iโm an interloper in their midst. I long to earn their acceptance, to prove myself worthy of their family name. Each day, I strive to be the perfect wife for Carter, tending to his needs with care and devotion. Yet no matter how hard I try, it seems as though I can never quite measure up to their expectations. Even so, a sense of determination always stirs within me. I wonโt be cowed by their judgment, nor wonโt I allow their harsh words to dim the light of my love for Carter. I'll be strong and unwavering in my resolve, and Iโll make my husband proud. ------ Hazelโs POV I have an unbelievable secret that I canโt wait to tell my husband. With our three year anniversary coming up, itโs about time we make our family complete. I hear the rumors being spread about me by his relatives; the whisper that Iโm barren. I look down at the little pink plus sign on the test and I smile. Itโs all going to change now. Carter will be so happy when I tell him. When I first met Carter at college, I had just stepped out of the campus coffee shop and a cyclist almost ran me over. Carter stepped in and grabbed me out of harmโs way. I instantly felt butterflies in my stomach. He has been my hero from the very beginning. He is the city's most famous bachelor. and an incredibly rich man. I never thought he would be interested in someone like me. I had nothing to give him. Because of that, I have always felt inferior to him in our marriage. Not everyone approved of the marriage from the beginning. The house staff is respectful, but I think itโs only because I am the mistress. Not because they think I deserve it. I see the judgment in their eyes when they look at me. Both my mother-in-law and sisters-in-law are constantly making comments about my appearance. They love to remind me that I represent the formidable Whitlock family. As if my looks and the way I dress will forever stain their familyโs image. I wasnโt even allowed to make any decisions on my own wedding. I tried to pick out the flowers and I was told my taste was โtoo simpleโ for a wedding to the most nobel family. I have also been told on several occasions that I should be โseen and not heardโ during family meetings. Nobody trusts my opinion, let alone asks for it. Carterโs mother, Elmyra, has always been distant and indifferent to me. She treats me like an outcast and every time she approaches me I get nervous. Her hair is always perfectly done up; her makeup and clothes flawless. She is an intimidating woman and she often makes me feel small. She knows exactly what to say to cut deeply too. โI suppose you are happy riding my sonโs coat tails the rest of your life? What purpose do you serve if you canโt give him an heir?โ โItโs probably for the best, dear. As an orphan, you wouldnโt know the first thing about being a mother anyway.โ โI donโt know what my son was thinking when he decided to marry you. You arenโt strong enough to be the lady of this family.โ But I know I can rely on Carter to protect me from her harsh words and actions when heโs around. He even defends me against his mother when she is hard on me. โI know you want to be a grandmother mom, but Hazel and I are happy. We will have a child when we are ready.โ Then he turns to me and kisses me on the forehead. I donโt know why Elmyra hates me so much. It makes me feel bad about myself, like I will never be good enough for her son. But, from now on, everything is going to change. Even Elmyra will have to start treating me better once she hears the news. I have a husband who adores me, a beautiful home and now, after years of trying, a new addition on the way to make our family complete. Me, an orphan, finally getting a real family to call her own. Just then Carter walks out of the bedroom looking as handsome as ever with his dark blonde hair, piercing blue eyes and chiseled jaw. โMorning, babe. Whatโs for breakfast?โ Carter asks as he strolls into the kitchen. He kisses me on the cheek and lightly squeezes my wrist as he walks past me to get his coffee. โEggs and bacon,โ I reply with a giggle. We eat our breakfast in companionable silence. I cherish every moment alone with my husband. I donโt care what his mother or his other relatives think. I just want his approval. The one person who has truly loved me and been there for me in my life. While Iโm standing at the sink washing dishes, I feel a presence behind me suddenly. Something cold and heavy is placed on my heart. I look down at the most beautiful diamond necklace Iโve ever seen. It has a big cushion cut stone in the center and smaller stones wrapping up the sides of the necklace. โCarter! What is this for?โ I ask breathlessly. โFor being so beautiful,โ he replies. He leads me over to a mirror on the wall and I gasp in surprise. โItโs stunning,โ I say in awe. โTonight Iโd like you to wear it to dinner with that short black dress I like. And, when we get back Iโd like you to wear only this,โ he says suggestively. โYes, sir,โ I say softly. I tip my head back to allow him access to my lips. He kisses me deeply and caresses my body and I lean into him. โI wish I could stay in bed all day with you, but this meeting is important,โ he moans and steps back. โI will be waiting for you,โ I say with a coy look. โWhat would I do without you? You are the love of my life,โ he replies. He gives me another quick kiss and then heโs headed towards the door. I sigh happily, thinking about how much Iโm going to miss him today. We had already planned on going out to dinner, but now it's going to be special. I will tell him Iโm with child tonight and surprise him. Out of the blue, my phone rings. I see that itโs my best friend, Lillian. Iโve been so focused on being the perfect wife for Carter that Iโve lost touch with many of my friends. But Lilian is different. She knows everything about Carter and me. She knows how my mother-in-law and the other family members treat me. She has always been there for me. She knows what to say to make me feel better about anything. -[โHi, Hazel. How are you?โ]- she asks. โIโm doing ok,โ I say. -[โYour voice doesnโt sound ok. Spill it.โ]- โItโs nothing, just had a visit from Elmyra.โ -[โYou really shouldnโt put up with her crap, Hazel. Talk to Carter about it, maybe he can get her to lay off.โ]- โI appreciate that but I think that will just make me look weak to her. Sheโs a complicated woman,โ I say. -[โSheโs a shrew,โ]- Lillianโs sarcasm makes me laugh. โSpeaking of which, I have to get ready for this afternoon tea so she doesnโt have my head. Talk later?โ I ask. -[โSo youโll be gone all afternoon?โ]- โYes, unfortunately. These ladies love to drone on about family traditions,โ I reply and then add, โWhy, do you need something?โ -[โNo, Iโm ok. I was going to ask you to lunch but another time. Iโm always here for you Hazel so if it gets too much give me a call.โ]- โThank you. You are such a great friend,โ I reply warmly. I hang up with Lillian and feel a pang of regret. Iโm going to make it a priority to dedicate more time to our friendship. My day is over quickly. The tea goes very well and I decide to head home early. Usually, Iโd follow the women back to Elmyra's house for dinner. I always want to be part of them. But this time, Iโm very tired. I walk into our apartment and set my bag on the counter. I hum to myself, excited about seeing Carter soon. I start to walk into the kitchen when I hear a noise. It sounds like a moan. I stop what Iโm doing instantly. Fear creeps up my spine. I make my way back towards the sound and I hear it again. Then I hear a bang noise and I almost jump out of my skin. My heart is pounding and my legs feel shaky. Something is wrong. I know it in my gut. I start to push the door open slowly and it makes a small creaking sound. What I see makes me gasp. A woman is grinding on top of Carter and heโs moaning. He grabs her groin and looks up at her adoringly. I feel like someone has just ripped my heart out. My breathing becomes erratic. I start to panic. My knees feel like jello. I clutch the door frame for support. How could he do this to me?! This man who said I was the love of his life just this morning! This man who gave me a beautiful necklace and told me he hated leaving me! Just then, the woman turns to me with an evil grin. Like sheโs enjoying making me watch in horror. I canโt believe my own eyes. I draw shaky breaths as tears fall down my face. My heart pounds mercilessly as I lock eyes with Carterโthe man Iโve once loved, now a mere stranger before me. Everything I thought I knew about my husband. About my life. Destroyed in an instant. The sight before me shocks me to my core. Lillian and Carter. In our bed. Making love. Chapter 2: The man who says he loves me in the morning is now making love with my best friend. Carter's hands roam over Lillian's underdressed body, his lips trailing feverish kisses along her neck, while Lillian's laughter echoes in the room like a cruel taunt. My throat constricts. I want to curse, to scream, to lash out at them with every ounce of fury burning inside me. But my voice fails me, lost in a desert of despair. Finally, Carter and Lillian notice my presence, their affection abruptly extinguished like a candle snuffed out by a gust of wind. My tears fall unchecked now, hot and bitter against my cheeks. Carter scrambles to his feet, hastily pulling on his clothes. โWhy are you here?โ he asks. Lillian remains on the bed, a smirk playing at the corners of her lips, her gaze cold and calculating. She revels in my agony, relishing the destruction she has wrought. โItโs not what you think it is,โ Carter says. My heart shatters into a million jagged pieces. I need to get out of here! I clutch at my ventricle, willing my heart to keep beating. Carter catches up to me, his hand reaching out to touch my arm, but I recoil from his touch as if burned. "Hazel, letโs talk," he demands, his voice raw with emotion. But I shake my head, my resolve hardening with each passing moment. โTalk about what?โ My voice is a mere ghost of its former strength. โAbout how you slept with my best friend behind my back?โ Now, I'm left shattered, questioning every moment of intimacy with Carter, every laugh shared with Lillian. Was it all a facade, a cruel illusion of love and friendship? The pain is unbearable, the disbelief suffocating! I make it back to our house after a hazy drive. I ascend to the master bedroom, my movements fueled by a desperate need to escape. With trembling hands, I begin to pull out my clothes and belongings from the cabinets and drawers, stuffing them haphazardly into a suitcase. I donโt care how messy it looks, donโt care about anything except getting away from all of it! "Whatโs gotten into you this time?" Elmyra calls out, breaking through the haze of my grief. I turn to her, standing in the doorway, her eyes narrowed, her jaw clenched. Her aura exudes mockery and arrogance. I manage to choke out, "Iโm leaving." Elmyra hisses, as if wanting to curse at me. But before she can speak again, I brush past her, down the stairs and flee from the house, my suitcase clutched tightly in my numbing hands. I steady my breath, then climb into my car and start the engine, the roar of the motor drowning out the tumultuous thoughts swirling in my mind. I drive without direction; my subconscious takes control of the steering wheel and leads me to the only place I may feel safe - my parents' house. Mama is actually waiting for me at the threshold, Iโm overwhelmed that I ignore the fact why she knows Iโm coming. I walk in the doorway and papa, whoโs reading a paper, frowns and asks, "Why do you look like that?โ I sink onto the sofa, struggling to hold back my sobs. "What happened?" Mama perches on the edge of the sofa, her hand reaching out to brush away the tears that are staining my cheeks. I take a shaky breath, my heart constricting with pain. "I caught Carter and Lillian...together." I thought I'd have my parentsโ support. But then, to my horror, their expressions darken, a look of apprehension crossing their faces. "Hazel," mama begins, her tone accusatory. "What have you done wrong?" Mamaโs words suffocate me with its cruelty. โHe is cheating on meโ!That asshoโโ Slap! My head rears back from pain and shock. Papa just slaps me across the face! I hold my hand to my cheek. โGo back to Carter now, apologize for leaving, promise him that you won't do it again and that you'll stay by his side.โ From the looks on their faces, I realize that they don't care about Carter's cheating. Only that I have brought disgrace upon them. Mamaโs eyes are cold as she adds, "You must have done something wrong to cause Carter to cheat on you. Have you thought about what it would do to our family? Your brother's scholarship is still on Carter's dime. Your sister is about to out in the society and can't be dragged down by you. Now, do everything you can to not let Carter leave you.โ This is my parents, my adoptive parents. I grew up pleasing them and being the best student in school, but they never look at me. Being adopted at a young age will do that. You are so grateful to the people who have taken you in. You are terrified of making a mistake that they may send you back to the orphanage and decide to adopt another child. A child thatโs more obedient, smarter, better. So you bust yourself trying to make them proud of you. You stifle any part of yourself that may talk back or speak up. It wasn't until I married Carter that papa accepted me. The day we got married was the happiest day of my life. I thought mama and papa have considered me family all these years, now it turns out I was wrong. They don't care about me, at all. Papa says, "Have you had enough, I'm going to call Carter and have him bring you home. " I canโt take this anymore, this isnโt what Iโm here for! This place can't provide the safety or even the comfort I desperately need! I turn on my heels and storm out of the house with my suitcase in hands before they can react. Humiliated, despised, and helplessโฆ as I begin to acknowledge that I lost my husband and my family on the same day. Chapter 3: It all clicks. The late night calls, the flirtings, the unusual caring with Lillian - their chuckles in bed, my parents' coldness, Elmyra's sneers. My mind replays these scenes over and over again, like a broken record. I sit on the edge of the bed of the apartment I rented since last night, the weight of the world keeps pressing down on my shoulders. Just as Iโm sinking deeper into the darkness of my thoughts, my phone shatters the silence. I jolt as I wipe away my tears. My hand trembles slightly as I glance at the screen. Then, my jaw clenches in anger when I see the caller IDโLillian. โReally? You still have the guts to call me?โ I hiss. -["Listen, Hazel, it's evident where his heart lies, and frankly, your dramatics won't change that. Just gracefully accept the truth and move on, like any sensible person would."]- Lilian says in her sweet voice, without a hint of remorse or shame. -[โWe need to talk, Express Cafe, now.โ]- My grip on the phone tightens, my nails digging into my palm as I fight to keep my composure. I force my anger down, steeling myself for whatever lies Lillian is about to spin. "Fool me once" I say courageously, โIf you thinkโฆโ -[โDon't you want to know why and when your husband cheated on you?โ]- She's been my best friend long enough to know what will pinch me. She hangs up, the silence that follows echoing in the small apartment like a deafening roar. Express Cafe is just a few minutes' drive away. I slip into a corner booth and wait, quickly smooth concealer around my swollen eyes, as I watch the door with bated breath. Lilian comes in blushing like a woman in love, and ironically, her love has turned out to be mine. An awkward silence ensues and we stare at our respective coffee cups for a while. โWhy, Lillian?โ I finally ask. "Hazel, you need to face the truth. Carter loves me, not you. He's only with you because he wants an heir, a baby. Once he gets what he wants from you, he'll leave you for me." "Is that so?" I ask, my voice trembling slightly despite my best efforts to maintain my composure. A very faint smile plays at the corners of Lilianโs lips that she tries so hard to hide by tilting her head down as she reaches into her bag and produces her phone. With a few taps of her finger, she turns the screen towards me, revealing a string of text messages between her and Carter. "He's been seeing me behind your back, Hazel," Lilian says, her voice holding a tinged of a smug satisfaction. "He's been telling me everything. How he can't stand being with you, how he's only staying with you for appearanceโs sake. He's using you, and you're too blind to see it." My breath dries in my throat as I read the messages. The Carter in the text messages is nothing like the husband I knew. I can tell by his texts that he is happy, which makes my heart ache even more. โBut what does that have to do with why you betrayed me? You were my best friend,โ I say, trying not to show how much these messages hurt me. โAt first we were friends, but then I realized I could never really respect you. The way you let people walk all over you...Iโm sorry but itโs just pathetic. And then I stayed close to you so I could be near Carter,โ she replies. โHe never loved you, Iโm always his true love. He met me first. โ she continues. I swallow a lump in my throat and quietly take a deep breath. โHow long has this been going on?โ I ask. โPretty much since the beginning. A few months into your marriage, maybe,โ she says without remorse. My head is reeling with the idea that Carter has been cheating on me for so long. Iโm shocked that Lillian has such a mean streak. Sheโs never my friend to begin with. How could I have let these kinds of people into my life, into my heart? Just then I hear the door jingle, prompting me to look up. To my shock, Carter appears. โYou called Carter?โ I ask Lillian in a horrified tone. โYou two really need to talk. You need to think about your life choices, accept the reality and it's good for all of us.โ she replies snidely. She gets up to leave and Carter takes her place in the opposite chair. "Come home with me. We had a good time, didn't we? We can still live the life we had before. Itโs not like you donโt enjoy the things we do together,โ he says. He tries to run his hand up my arm but I slap him away. โDonโt touch me. I only enjoyed them when I thought I was the only one you were doing it with!โ I whisper between my gritted teeth. "I'm the only one who can stand you in bed, you know how boring you used to be in bed? I made you moan over and over. You know you still want me..." He stares at me with those cold eyes. The eyes I once loved. Heโs finally stopped pretending. Itโs all been an act. I see that now. Carter changes his personality to suit his needs. He manipulates people to get what he wants. He manipulated me before and heโs trying to do it again! I say nothing, trying to keep my anger in check. โI donโt know why you are fighting this so hard. Most women would die to be in your place. Theyโd be very happy to get even the tiniest scrap from me,โ He pauses, waiting for my reply. But I keep my silence. โYou agreed to my terms. I have your signature on the prenuptial agreement to prove it. So get over yourself and fulfill your duty to me. Then you can go on about your sad little life, while I rise to the top and make my family proud,โ he boasts. โDid you ever love me?โ I ask. "Love is too strong of a word.โ He laughs out loud as if he has heard something ridiculous. โYou have good breeding, your parents assured me like you would be an obedient wife, and all along you've done well. Why don't you keep it up? Come home now, before I run out of patience." Heโs never loved me. His tone reminds me of the new racehorse he bought last month. A new, premium racehorse, presentable, brings him victories and can be bred to produce foals again. He never sees me as a wife, or even as a person. โNot a chance,โ I say proudly. โRemember your prenup? If you don't bear me children, you will be ruined. Your family will be in debt for the rest of their lives. Don't you dare try to leave me.โ His pupils dilate like that of a wild animal's, and he chokes me with his hand. I can barely breathe, I can feel heโs serious about hurting me, this man I had loved is literally taking my breath away. โIโm leaving you, one way or anotherโฆ." With what strength I have left I try to remove his hand and finish the sentence with the last of my breath. My peripheral vision sees that people are already whispering and looking over at us, and some even take out their phones and start taking pictures of us. โHow are youโฆโ He growls, low and dangerous. He notices the look in the crowd's eyes, and I'm betting he wonโt dare make a scandal like domestic scandal in public if he wants to remain reputable. He stares at me with anger in his eyes. He then lets go and I can finally breathe heavily. I cough, calling his bluff. He finally breaks the stare and leaves in a huff. The look on his face is absolutely worth it. I may have to pay the consequences later. But for now, I feel free for the first time in my life. I will leave Carter, no matter the cost. Chapter 4: Read your contract - This should be on my tombstone. I dug out my prenup from when papa told me not to worry about anything, that they would protect me and all I had to do was sign it, and so I did. But now, I realize that every conditioning of this prenup is working against me. My parents sold me into marriage, and theyโll be furious with me for getting a divorce. Theyโll be bankrupt and vulnerable to attacks without Carterโs protection. โIf you want a divorce, you wonโt get a penny from me. You will no longer be under my protection. Think twice, Hazel.โ Those are Carter's words, which are burned in my memory. I just wanna brush off the agreement and his threat by not thinking too much about them. But then, they start to haunt me, making me understand the realness of it all. Escaping isnโt a possibility, and Carter proves thatโฆ The rain pours as I stand on the doorstep of my rented house, the water mingles with the tears I try so hard to hold back. โYour husband's men took your car. I was about to tell you while theyโre here so you can talk to them about it, but theyโre so aggressive and I got scared that they may hurt me,โ my landlord says. A rush of anger and helplessness courses through me as I stare at the empty space of the parking lot where I last left my car. As if thatโs not enough for Carter, he adds another unwanted surprise for me. โAlso,โ the landlord begins, pity and fear etched across her wrinkled face. "Your husband called through the cellphone of one of his men. He threatened me, said he'd ruin my business if I don't evict you. So.., I can't keep the house rented to you anymore.โ The world seems to tilt, the ground shifting beneath my feet. "B-but, I have nowhere to go. Besides, I need time to find a new place." The landlord shakes her head, her face stern. "I can't risk it. The young Whitlock has too much influence. I can't afford to be caught in whatever marital problem you have." I wanna protest again, but sheโs right. Carter may put her in a difficult situation like heโs doing to me now, and I donโt wanna be the reason for it. With a heavy heart, I pack my things, and drag myself and my suitcase out into the storm. I then head to the nearest hotel. Without cash, I rely on my credit cards. The clerk at the front desk shakes his head as he hands back my credit card to me. "I'm sorry, Mrs. Whitlock. Your card has been declined." My cheeks burn with shame. "Can you try again, please?" The clerk tries again,... and beep! Declined, again! Maybe this hotelโs POS machine isnโt working - at least thatโs what I wanna believe in, though deep down, my inkling is telling me something else. I walk to another hotel, and approach the front desk, my hands shaking as I present my credit card. "I need a room, please," I say, trying to keep my voice steady. To my surprise, without even taking my credit card, the clerk shakes her head. "I'm sorry, Mrs. Whitlock. We can't help you." โWhy?โ I ask with a little frustration. The manager, who looks uncomfortable, comes to the clerkโs rescue, and answers, โMr. Carter Whitlock has banned you from our hotel." Youโve got to be kidding me? Where would I go now? Thereโs no refuge for me now. Carterโs reach is far and his influence powerful, making sure Iโm isolated, vulnerable. Heโs trying to force me back, cutting me off financially, stripping away my options. Soon I will be in debt and poor, which isnโt good, especially that Iโm now going to be a mother. I have to find a way out of this, and the only temporary solution I can think of is to pawn my pearls and earrings for some cash. I quickly head to a pawnshop, and its owner eyes me as I lay my jewelry on the counter. "I need to cash these," I say. He picks up the pearls, turning them over in his hands, his eyes narrowing as he glances at my suitcase. "You left home?โ โY-yes, and itโs hard to find a place to stay. My credit cards have been declining, so I need cash.โ The owner smirks as he says, โNice pieces, but I can't give you much for them. Market's down, you see." My heart sinks. I know heโs lying, taking advantage of my desperation. But what choice do I have - haggling? Then what? Get another rejection? I donโt wanna face with that. "How much?" I ask, bracing myself. He names a figure thatโs insultingly low, but I nod, swallowing my pride and the bitter taste of defeat. "I'll take it." At least I have money that'll last for a few days if I spend it wisely. Thatโs what matters for now. He counts out the bills with deliberate slowness while his eyes on me, a predator sensing vulnerability. When he finally hands over the money, I grab it. But I have to stay in the lobby for a moment, waiting for the rain to stop. Suddenly, my eyes flicker on the TV thatโs currently showing a flash news with a caption; โThe Divorce of the Centuryโ. The wife, once vilified by the town, now stood vindicated by Marius Thorne, the town's most revered lawyer. โMarius Thorne,โ I echo. Marius Thorneโs image flashes on the screen, a vision of confidence and success. His gold eyes, piercing, enchanting even. According to the news, he's a partner at the biggest law firm in town and he never loses in court. โHe may be who I need,โ I murmur to myself, excitement surging within me. Once the rain stops, I begin searching for a new place to stay. With newfound determination and what little cash I have, I find refuge in a cramped flat that doesn't check documents. The landlord, a cold and distant old lady, lays down the rules; no pets allowed, no men allowed, before disappearing from my sight. In this tiny room, my troubled heart finally quiets down. For now, Iโm safe, hidden from Carter's relentless pursuit. Through G****e, I search the name โMarius Thorneโ, and quickly call the numbers on the law firm profile heโs working with. After a few rings, a female voice echoes from the other end of the line. -[โCounsel Commanders Law Firm, how can we help you?โ]- โHi! Iโm filing for divorce and I need to make an appointment with Marius Thorne, is he available to speak with?โ Chapter 5: Divorce is never as easy as I thought it would be. -[โIโm calling to inform you that Mr. Thorne has decided to NOT take your case. We can recommend good divorce lawyers if neededโฆ.โ]- The womanโs tone is cool and reserved over the phone. Confusion clouds my thoughts, and questions race through my mindโwhy would he turn me away? Is he busy? Or does he find my case not worthy of his time? I quickly rush to the law firm, hoping to personally meet and talk to Marius Throne, but Iโm told by his secretary that appointments with Marius Throne are currently lined up for a month from now. So, heโs busy. Even so,... Iโm still hoping that heโll have a change of heart and accept my divorce case if only he can understand my situation. Itโs a good case, hard case to be exact - my prenup agreement is harsh and my husband was caught cheating red-handed. This may pique his interest. The bustling lobby seems to shrink in an instant as I, lost in my thoughts, collide with someone in a sharp, tailored suit. I stumble back, instinctively apologizing. "Oh, I'm so sor-!" But when the man speaks, I freeze mid-apology. "Hazel?" he says, his voice a mix of surprise and recognition. My brow furrows as I stare at him, trying to place the familiar handsome face. Then, it hits me. "Leslie?!" I exclaim, my confusion giving way to excitement. "It's nice to see you again!" Leslie returns my smile, his eyes lighting up with warmth. "It's nice to see you again too." My mind trips me back to our high school days, the laughter, the secrets shared, which were overshadowed by the years of silence that followed my marriage to Carter. "Itโs been a long time,โ I say. โWhat are you doing in a place like this?" A proud smile tugs at Leslie's lips as he proudly gestures around the lobby. "I work here as a Senior Legal Associate." Senior Legal Associate? - I echo inwardly with awe. Quickly, a glimmer of possibility shines through my uncertainty! And when Leslie asks the question back to me, I know I have to seize the opportunity. โHow about you, what are you doing here?โ In a heartbeat, I reply, "I'm divorcing my husband, and I need to talk to Attorney Thorne now. His secretary said he has many cases lined up for him. But heโs my only hope. Can you help me meet him, please?" As I wait for his response, I look into his eyes, praying for a lifeline. โMr. Thorne is a troublesome boss, difficult to work with, and even harder to persuade,โ he says. My stubbornness refuses to let doubt cloud my determination. Iโm desperate. Despite the warning signs, I press on, my resolve unshaken. "Just let me talk to him. Then I'll decide whether I still want to trust my case to him or not... please?" Leslie's smile turns brittle. "Alright. I'll try to talk to him first about you. Follow me." I follow Leslie, then wait outside one of the doors that are lining the corridor as I watch him disappear into the room. I hope Leslie's charm will be enough to sway Marius Thorne, to at least grant me a chance to plead my case. And maybe, just maybe, if I can make him understand, I can turn the tide in my favor. After a moment of agony, Leslie finally emerges from the room, his smile radiant as he meets my eager gaze. โYou may now go in,โ he announces, his voice tinged with excitement. My heart leaps with anticipation, and I can't help but squeal with delight. With a grin, I say, โThank you so, so much!โ I waste no time in crossing the threshold into the room. As I close the door, my eyes quickly fall upon Marius Thorne behind the mahogany desk. Heโs tall and heโs impeccably handsome too, more so than Leslie and even Carter himself. Clad in a printed suit, he exudes an air of impassiveness that sends chills down my spine. His jawline is sharp, his gold eyes are more piercing in person than they were on TV, and his dark hair perfectly groomed. Mariusโ voice is devoid of emotion just like his expression. "My secretary and Leslie told me that youโre planning to divorce your husband, Carter of the Whitlock Family.โ Surprised, I ask, "You know my husband?" Is Marius Thorne turning me off because of my husband? He dodges my question, and delivers his verdict instead. "I have a full schedule for the rest of the year to take on new cases. I can recommend good divorce lawyers to you If you need..." Disappointment and frustration foam in my heart, my hands clenching to my sides. "Is there anything I can do to change your mind?" Marius remains unmoved. Without a tiny hint of second-thought, he crashes me with a one-word answer, โNone.โ Pride becomes my shield from rejection. Iโve walked away from anyone where Iโm unwanted. I did that from Carter and his family, from my parents, God, I can just walk away from this stranger too! With a forced smile, I turn to the door. But just as I reach the threshold, a hand grips my wrist with unexpected force. Then, Carter's angry face looms over me. I struggle to maintain my balance. "Carter, let go of me!" I demand, my voice trembling with fear and defiance. โWhat do you think youโre doing here?!โ he asks back, his face red with beasty fury. Carter drags me aggressively. I try to get rid of him, shoving my wrist from his iron grip, but his strength is overpowering. Finally, we reach the lobby, where curious eyes watch our confrontation unfold. Carter releases my wrist, but my humiliation doesn't end there. In a voice sharp and cold, he unleashes a torrent of threats that makes my blood run cold. "I own half of this law firm. When my wife came to my firm looking for a divorce lawyer, You think I wouldn't notice that?โโ" My eyes widen in surpriseโฆ thatโs news to me. Carter pinches my hand and says, โYou didn't really think that you could find a lawyer who would dare take you on, did you?โ My mind goes blank, could this be the reason why Marius Thorne kept refusing me? Is there any other divorce attorney in town who will take my case? Whoโs not scared of Carter? Carter grabs my arm once again. โStop defying me! You canโt just waltz out of our marriage without consequences. Didnโt I already make sure you know that? The hardship youโre going through now is just the tip of the iceberg of what else I can do to you." I try to let go myself, but itโs no use, Carter is much stronger than I am. He then tightens his grip on me, which prompts me to hiss in pain. โCarter, please,โ I beg. Carter parts his lips, but before he can continue his tirade, a pair of hands intervenes, grasping both my arm and his. I look up, and see Marius standing before us. | LEARN_MORE | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&u | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | redtgb.com | VIDEO | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/453264053_1203541190996887_6417988272451000306_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=110&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=3yYyQ17ePYIQ7kNvgGg9iqt&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=ABPwkCq691JLqdHhVoqj7W9&oh=00_AYCfn7UbHn4b43EvnnMz_zF5xocutogoUKuhHQoVWZJSow&oe=672FED78 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,558 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312659}' |
No | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 |
|
๐Attention! Do not read in public๏ผ๐ | My mother blamed me for my sister's death and hit me unconscious to the ground, but when I finally woke up, only to find myself being taken to my sister's death memorial while her once boyfriend, now my fated mate, mind-linking me about his sleeping with another woman last night... Lily POV "What makes you think that you have the right to eat this morning? On the anniversary of your sisterโs death?" I thought I was alone when I snuck into the packhouse to grab something to eat before Stephanie's memorial began. But there was my mother standing in the door with a look that could kill. "Do you have any idea what Stephanie is eating right now? NOTHING. She is eating NOTHING because SHE IS DEAD. Because of you!" With that, my mother slapped me hard across the face. I stumbled back, trying to avoid falling. My face hurt like burning. Still I refused to make a sound. I held the tears back and bit my cheek harder causing more blood to fill my mouth. You may ask why I don't fight back. I won't. Mom loved me once, before Stephanie died. She became this monster only because she thought I got her favorite daughter killed, which was so not the truth. It was a rumor spread by Stephanie's boyfriend Alpha James. The night Stephanie died, she told James I asked her to go pick me up in the unfended woods where she later was torn apart by the Rogues. Because I was meeting a boy there. A complete lie. I never had luck with boys. I was always ignored in school. Yet the lie haunted my entire teenage years, even till today. "And do you know what James is going to announce today?" my mother continued angrily. "he is TAKING A CHOSEN MATE! It should be your sister Stephanie to be our future Luna! Not those easy girls he used as distraction!โ Chosen Mate๏ผ But he was my fated mate. Yeah, my sister's boyfriend and I, the Moon Goddess must be playing with us. That night by the waterfall, James held me into his arms and kissed me in the most amorous way. But when he realized it was me instead of my sister, his eyes turned from gentle to angry. "How can it be you? You were ... ugly๏ผWhere is your glasses? And, what happened to your freckles?" "I am no longer 14, James, I've grown up." James simply went mad. He only wanted to see me punished, as the revenge for his girlfriend's death. "Mark my words, Little mate, betrayal pains can kill a wolf." He snarled at me. Maybe this is his way? But before I could figure this all out, another slap sent me down the stairs. I fell unconscious. James POV I see Lily being taken to the arena all wrapped like a body bag. I walk close and pull the blanket. She is covered in scars and bruises. What happened to her? I looked up, finding Lily's mother avoiding to see Lily as if she were hiding something. "What happened?" I asked Lily's brother who brought her here under my command. "Mom said Lily fell down the stairs by accident." Nick said. But that doesn't explain those deep and bleeding wounds. Her eyes closed, her body shivering, her hair a mess. For a second, I think if I made a mistake by insisting she be brought here. No, don't feel sorry for her. She needs to pay for what she did. โPlease bring Lily to her seat in the front next to Sheila.โ I say to Nick. My father puts his hand on my shoulder. โSon, I do not think that is a good idea. It looks to me like Lily needs medical attention. You wanted Lily here, and she is, but why donโt we just keep her on the side or in the back until the event is done?โ โNO! She will sit in the front next to Sheila, like planned.โ โSonโฆ.โ โNo, father. Lily and Sheila must sit together.โ Just as I say Sheila's name, I hear Lilyโs heart beginning to race. I smirk. She heard me. โLittle Mate, does it bother you that you have to sit next to Sheila today?โ I ask Lily via mind-link. Her increased heart-beat tells me that she is very much awake. โI invited Sheila to sit next to you when she left my bedroom this morning. You know, she stayed the night in my bedroom last night, which she often does these days." I see a tear slip from Lily's closed eyes, which confirms that I am right. She can definitely hear me. "Get ready, Little Mate. Sitting next to Sheila is only one part of the fun that I have planned for you this morning.โ I end the mind-link. โBring Lily to her seat,โ I say again to Nick. โIt is show-time.โ | LEARN_MORE | https://getokn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=10745&u | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | getokn.com | DCO | https://getokn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=10745&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/456055937_963242915600245_680381809046226054_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=TDjxGQ2s4q0Q7kNvgF6ATgD&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=ABPwkCq691JLqdHhVoqj7W9&oh=00_AYBFSLM7grNyB1bD_jvlxfHFl5suDzo1CvNRSyVkOdkWJg&oe=672FDB6D | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,560 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312659}' |
No | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 |
|
๐Attention! Do not read in public๏ผ๐ | My mother blamed me for my sister's death and hit me unconscious to the ground, but when I finally woke up, only to find myself being taken to my sister's death memorial while her once boyfriend, now my fated mate, mind-linking me about his sleeping with another woman last night... Lily POV "What makes you think that you have the right to eat this morning? On the anniversary of your sisterโs death?" I thought I was alone when I snuck into the packhouse to grab something to eat before Stephanie's memorial began. But there was my mother standing in the door with a look that could kill. "Do you have any idea what Stephanie is eating right now? NOTHING. She is eating NOTHING because SHE IS DEAD. Because of you!" With that, my mother slapped me hard across the face. I stumbled back, trying to avoid falling. My face hurt like burning. Still I refused to make a sound. I held the tears back and bit my cheek harder causing more blood to fill my mouth. You may ask why I don't fight back. I won't. Mom loved me once, before Stephanie died. She became this monster only because she thought I got her favorite daughter killed, which was so not the truth. It was a rumor spread by Stephanie's boyfriend Alpha James. The night Stephanie died, she told James I asked her to go pick me up in the unfended woods where she later was torn apart by the Rogues. Because I was meeting a boy there. A complete lie. I never had luck with boys. I was always ignored in school. Yet the lie haunted my entire teenage years, even till today. "And do you know what James is going to announce today?" my mother continued angrily. "he is TAKING A CHOSEN MATE! It should be your sister Stephanie to be our future Luna! Not those easy girls he used as distraction!โ Chosen Mate๏ผ But he was my fated mate. Yeah, my sister's boyfriend and I, the Moon Goddess must be playing with us. That night by the waterfall, James held me into his arms and kissed me in the most amorous way. But when he realized it was me instead of my sister, his eyes turned from gentle to angry. "How can it be you? You were ... ugly๏ผWhere is your glasses? And, what happened to your freckles?" "I am no longer 14, James, I've grown up." James simply went mad. He only wanted to see me punished, as the revenge for his girlfriend's death. "Mark my words, Little mate, betrayal pains can kill a wolf." He snarled at me. Maybe this is his way? But before I could figure this all out, another slap sent me down the stairs. I fell unconscious. James POV I see Lily being taken to the arena all wrapped like a body bag. I walk close and pull the blanket. She is covered in scars and bruises. What happened to her? I looked up, finding Lily's mother avoiding to see Lily as if she were hiding something. "What happened?" I asked Lily's brother who brought her here under my command. "Mom said Lily fell down the stairs by accident." Nick said. But that doesn't explain those deep and bleeding wounds. Her eyes closed, her body shivering, her hair a mess. For a second, I think if I made a mistake by insisting she be brought here. No, don't feel sorry for her. She needs to pay for what she did. โPlease bring Lily to her seat in the front next to Sheila.โ I say to Nick. My father puts his hand on my shoulder. โSon, I do not think that is a good idea. It looks to me like Lily needs medical attention. You wanted Lily here, and she is, but why donโt we just keep her on the side or in the back until the event is done?โ โNO! She will sit in the front next to Sheila, like planned.โ โSonโฆ.โ โNo, father. Lily and Sheila must sit together.โ Just as I say Sheila's name, I hear Lilyโs heart beginning to race. I smirk. She heard me. โLittle Mate, does it bother you that you have to sit next to Sheila today?โ I ask Lily via mind-link. Her increased heart-beat tells me that she is very much awake. โI invited Sheila to sit next to you when she left my bedroom this morning. You know, she stayed the night in my bedroom last night, which she often does these days." I see a tear slip from Lily's closed eyes, which confirms that I am right. She can definitely hear me. "Get ready, Little Mate. Sitting next to Sheila is only one part of the fun that I have planned for you this morning.โ I end the mind-link. โBring Lily to her seat,โ I say again to Nick. โIt is show-time.โ | LEARN_MORE | https://getokn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=10745&u | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | getokn.com | DCO | https://getokn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=10745&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/456055937_963242915600245_680381809046226054_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=TDjxGQ2s4q0Q7kNvgF6ATgD&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=ABPwkCq691JLqdHhVoqj7W9&oh=00_AYBFSLM7grNyB1bD_jvlxfHFl5suDzo1CvNRSyVkOdkWJg&oe=672FDB6D | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,565 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 | ๐Read the next chapters๐ | Chapter 1 โSir, Madam is not feeling well," the butler of the Gannon mansion reported on the phone. The man at the end of the line spoke in a nonchalant tone. "So, take her to the hospital. Iโm not a doctor." The line died immediately. The butler was so pale, beads of sweat formed on his forehead. Zora relaxed her back against the sofa, feeling weak from abdominal pains. Trying to mask the pain, she asked hopefully. โWhat did he say?โ The butler instantly put on a calm smile when he turned in her direction. โMadam, sir said he will meet us at the hospital.โ Zoraโs eyes lit up. Ezrah had not been home for almost three days, and she was missing him so much. This sickness seemed to be her lucky charm to get him to her side again. โOkay. Letโs go.โ Zoraโs heart warmed at the fact that Ezrah at least cared about his child. Both of them were caught in a scandal two years ago, so getting married was the only way to curb the situation. Ezrahโs stance was clear through it all. โWhen everything calms down, we are getting a divorce.โ Zora hoped that by that time, she would have been able to melt his cold heart and make him fully hers, so her hopes were high. However, over time, she found him slowly drawing away from her, even when they worked together in the same company and shared the same bedroom. Two months ago, Ezrah returned and asked Zora for a divorce but chanced upon the test results. His expression was dark. โLetโs hold off on the divorce until after the child is born, but donโt expect to remain Mrs. Gannon. That title belongs to somebody else, but itโs definitely not you.โ The marriage after those words had been terrible. Ezrah barely returned home, barely got intimate with her. The only reason she still bore Mrs. Gannon was because of the child in her womb. Zora thought that his reason for being away was because of work since he was the CEO of the Gannon Group, a multibillion-dollar company where Zora also worked as an assistant manager. Unknown to Ezrah, Zora had been secretly in love with him for five years, but that drunk night at her best friend Cocoโs birthday party, Zora woke up in bed with Ezrah. She decided to keep it a secret and a memory she would forever cherish when the media picked up the news. Ezrah could not allow the scandal to ruin his well-kept reputation and cause him losses, so he announced that he and Zora were already dating secretly and were soon getting married. Zora, who had been madly in love with him, was excited about the news of getting married to Ezrah. Zora hoped that with time, his heart would warm up towards her, but that did not happen. Even in her state, Ezrah hardly spent the night at home. On the way to the hospital, Zoraโs phone beeped, and looking at the content, her heart dropped. Ezrah was holding the delicate hand of a beautiful woman, a proud smile on his face. The caption read, โMr. Ezra Gannon admits to reigniting his love for his old flame, Miss Piper Henshaw.โ Zoraโs eyes were swollen with tears. As they dropped down her cheeks, she refused to believe it. Maybe it was photoshopped. There was never any news about Ezrah dating any woman before she had a baby for him. He never even warmed up to women. The man had long been secretive and kept his face from the media. Also, the butler Rudolph had said that Ezrah promised to meet them at the hospital, so the media must be spreading this false news to gain popularity. Even after everything, she still could not help the unease in her heart, instantly dialing his number. Despite him warning her to only communicate with him through the butler, Zora took the bull by the horn this time. Her call went through, but there was no answer. Her old self would have given up, but due to the unease in her heart because of the news, she couldnโt bring herself to do so. On the fourth ring, a woman answered the call. Her melodious voice made Zora feel less of a woman. โEzrah is in the bathroom.โ Zoraโs hands holding the phone shook, her heart in tatters. Ezrah never allowed her to touch his phone, but this woman casually answered his call, and was he really in the bathroom? Zora felt the pain in her chest worse than that of her abdomen. โWho are you?โ The words forced themselves out of her mouth. The woman responded casually, โPiper, his fiancรฉe. And you are?โ โWhatever he saved my name with,โ Zora responded calmly. The pain of the news was more than she could bear. Though knowing that Ezrah never loved her, she thought they could live in peace for the sake of the baby in her womb, but Ezrah never meant to make her dreams come true. The woman at the end of the line moved the phone from her ear to have a better view of the caller ID. โOh, Zora. If itโs urgent, I could drop a message for you when he comes out.โ The nights Ezrah spent away when Zora thought he was busy at work, it was a great disappointment that he was with the woman he loved, leaving her to suffer with her unborn child. She was still in her first trimester, and due to all the morning sickness and other health issues, Zora had taken a break from working at the company to recover first. Her mind lacked clarity, and she was beginning to doubt all the responses she got from Rudolph when she asked him to get in touch with Ezrah. โJust tell him to call me.โ Zora ended the call. At the hotel room, Ezrah returned from the meeting in the conference room. Since he never allowed anyone to answer their calls during meetings, he equally left his phone in the presidential suite meant for his relaxation. โWhat are you doing with my phone?โ He asked as soon as he entered the bedroom. Before Piper spoke, he asked again, โand I made it clear that you should wait for me at the lounge. How did you have access?โ The pout on Piperโs lips only made her cuter as she faked anger. โIs it wrong for me to come? We would have gotten married if Zora had not appeared.โ Ezrah was a man who loved to keep his love life private. He and Piper had been in a secret long-distance relationship. The night they arranged to meet at the birthday party of one of his business partnerโs sister, Piper had an emergency and could not attend as planned. That night, he mysteriously ended up in bed with Zora, an incident that should have been brushed under the carpet until the media took hold of it. Not wanting his well-maintained reputation to crack, he apologetically married Zora, promising Piper to divorce Zora secretly after two years when the news dies down. Things took a different turn when he found the test result after promising Piper that he was ending things with Zora. โI told you I was working on it. You should keep yourself hidden away from the press. We shouldnโt be seen together.โ Ezrahโs voice was stern. It was business for him first, and he didnโt want Piperโs presence to ruin it for him. Piper was uneasy at the reminder. Forcing a smile, she relayed, โI could be your confidential secretary. Please Ezrah, I donโt want to be away from you anymore.โ Ezrah did not give a response. His actions were always well thought out. It wasnโt easy for him to be the CEO of the legendary Gannon Group as the youngest of three sons. Any wrong move and his elder brothers would begin to fight for the position. โDid anyone call?โ He was scrolling through his phone when he caught sight of Zoraโs name. โYeah. Zora. She said you should call her,โ Piper responded with a smile, her fingers sliding over her exposed thighs as she lay seductively on the luxurious king-size bed. โWhat did you tell her?โ Ezrah frowned a little. He wanted to keep Piper a secret until after the divorce. โI pretended not to know about her existence.โ Piper lifted herself to a sitting position, and due to the long slit of the dress, her full thighs were exposed, but Ezrahโs attention was on the phone in his hand. โDo me a favor and donโt answer my calls again.โ His voice had lost its warmth. Piper faked remorse. โIโm sorry. I thought it was urgent.โ Ezrah finally held her gaze as he spoke roughly, โNothing about Zora is ever urgent.โ Chapter 2 Piper was very happy with his remark, but Zora was still Misses Gannon, the title Piper had long coveted. How she wished that night had not happened. If only that useless man had not appeared when she was about to leave for the airport to board the private jet, she would have been the one waking up in bed with Ezrah. It pained her that it had to be that woman, Zora. โEzrah, are you sure you will divorce her?โ Ezrah hated to be doubted. โYou donโt believe me? Iโm only with her because sheโs carrying my child. As soon as heโs born, I will divorce her.โ Piper smiled with satisfaction, and since she had mentally stored Zora's number after answering the call, she sent the recording to her. Remembering that the butler had called Ezrah informing him that Zora was sick, she asked after deleting the audio from her phone. โCan you go shopping with me? I didnโt bring enough clothes.โ Even if Zora showed the audio to Ezrah, Piper would deny it as she had used a number Ezrah didnโt know to send it. โI have another meeting in two hours, so you have an hour and a half to finish shopping,โ Ezrah said softly. Zoraโs heart tightened in her chest when she played the audio. The butler who was driving the car felt helpless, equally disappointed in his boss. Zora asked from the back seat of the luxurious car she was seated in. โDid he really tell you he was coming to the hospital?โ The butlerโs throat went dry. He always succeeded in making up excuses for his boss, but this time, everything backfired. That audio destroyed everything. โIโm sorry, maโam. I just didnโt want to see you sad.โ Zoraโs heart twitched, a bitter smile curled the corner of her lips, feeling like a fool as tears welled up in her eyes. She was nothing to Ezrah. The little surprises sent to ignite her hope were merely prepared by the butler. No matter how hard she tried, she couldnโt recover from the pain as she felt a force hit the car from the side, causing it to swerve off the road and somersault thrice. The butler was instantly unconscious. Zora felt unbearable pain, blood sputtered from her mouth and nose, then in between her thighs. No words could describe the agony as she watched the life draining out of her with intense pain settled in her abdomen. She managed to pick up her phone, which had fallen to the side from the impact, dialing her husbandโs number. Unable to lift the phone to her ear, she activated the speaker. โZora. Iโm busy.โ That was what Ezrah said as soon as he answered the phone, not waiting to hear what she had to say. After all, nothing about Zora was ever urgent to him. Before she lost consciousness, she heard the laughter of a woman with the words, โEzrah, I want these shoes.โ โTry them on. If they fit, you can have them.โ โSo, shopping with a woman is what you call busy.โ That was what Zora thought before losing consciousness. Zora woke up at the hospital after hours of surgery. Her face was as pale as a ghost, her countenance pitiful. Her butler, Rudolph, sat at her hospital bed, a smile on his face. He had sustained a few injuries, but they were not serious, and he was already discharged. โMadam, you are awake. Thank God.โ Zora was glad to see that Rudolph was fine. There were just bruises on his face. He quickly rushed out to call a doctor. โMrs. Gannon, how are you feeling?โ The doctor asked as he examined Zora, writing a few things on a writing pad he carried along. Zora was only concerned about one thing. โHow is my baby?โ Zora asked. The doctorโs eyes dulled. โIโm very sorry, but your baby couldnโt survive the impact.โ Tears brimmed in the back of Zoraโs eyes, but she fought them back. She lost everything. She left her fatherโs company to work for her husband, nurturing his business and enduring all the taunts of his arrogant family. At twenty-three, she had nothing to show for the man she had secretly loved for five good years. โItโs alright. She would have just suffered anyway.โ Her heart had turned cold due to the loss of the child. โExcuse me?โ The doctor was shocked. He expected her to cry like any woman in her situation would, but Zora bottled it in. She could endure all of Ezrahโs indifference towards her, but she would never forgive him for the loss of her child. That woman appeared, and Zora suddenly got involved in an accident. The case had to be investigated, but as for Ezrah, he no longer had a place in her heart. โSorry, that was not directed at you.โ There was no warmth in Zoraโs apologetic voice. The doctor forced a smile, finished his examination, and left. Zora stared at the butler at the doorway. He stood there since the doctor arrived. Zora was about to tear down but couldnโt do so. She had been weak for too long, leading to the death of her child. If she had left the first time Ezrah asked her for a divorce, this would not have happened. When she discovered this baby, she decided to consent to the divorce and leave. At least, she would have his child to remind her of the relationship they once shared. Unfortunately, the test result fell from her handbag, Ezrah saw it. Even when he decided for them to wait until after she gave birth, his treatment of her was no better. โWhere is Ezrah?โ Zora asked. Butler Rudolph was scared. He could feel the cold in Zoraโs voice, and even with the distance, he could feel the chills. โMadam, the man who hit us was drunk, and he died on the spot. The police are not able to contact his family either,โ Rudolph reported, trying to avoid answering her question. He was a middle-aged man. Zora did not believe the report but kept it to herself. The moment she discovered that the man she respected so much was lying to her, her trust in him dwindled. She will find ways to investigate the matter by herself. โThat isnโt my question.โ โBoss left here a few minutes ago,โ Rudolph answered. Zora was enraged this time. Not only Ezrah but Rudolph, the butler Ezrah assigned to her, was equally taking her for a fool. โDonโt lie to my face again.โ Her voice was stern and full of contempt. Rudolph pursed his lips, his head lowered. โBoss said, and I quote. โItโs rather unfortunate. Let the doctors take care of her. Iโm very busy at the moment.โ Zora knew what he was busy with. It was the woman whose voice she heard in the audio. She thought she was strong enough to take it, but a tear fell from her eyes before she could stop it. Ashamed of showing her weak side in front of Rudolph, she discharged him. โThank you, and please excuse me.โ Rudolph was never supposed to leave Zora's side, so he was reluctant. โMaโฆโ โI said, excuse me, Rudolph,โ Zoraโs voice raised, Rudolph decided to wait in front of the door. โOkay.โ As soon as he left the ward, Zora dialed a number. โSophโฆโ โDad, Iโm sorry. I made a mistake, and now, I lost everything.โ Zora didnโt hold back her tears as she spoke to her father on the phone. He was against the marriage the moment he realized that Ezrah did not feel the same way Zora felt about him, but she was optimistic, insisting that Ezrah would change. Expecting her father to scold her an, โI told you soโ lecture, his voice was rather soft as he asked her. โWhat happened, Zora?โ โI had an accident and lost the baby. Iโm coming home.โ The silence at the end of the line was deafening. She knew her father was saddened about the loss of his grandchild. When she was about to end the call, he suddenly said, โOh Zora. Iโm coming to get you. Just send me your location.โ Zora refused. She couldnโt leave until she was legally separated from Ezrah. โNo dad, I have a few things to do first.โ โWhat is that? Let me help you with it?โ Her father eagerly said, but she was in no mood to burden the middle-aged man. The loss had caused Zora to mature so fast as the reality of life hit her. No more would she depend on anyone. It was time to do something worthwhile with her life, but first of all, she will still have to face Ezrah for the last time. โDonโt worry. Itโs nothing I canโt handle. โOkay. We shall prepare your welcome party. I will inform your mom.โ Zora smiled and didnโt refuse her fatherโs kindness. Three days later, she was discharged from the hospital. As she waited for Ezrahโs return, she got the divorce papers ready. It was three days later in the dead of the night when Ezrah returned, tired-looking but his attractive features remained untouched by his fatigue. Zora had lost sleep, waiting for Ezrah during most of the days. As soon as she heard the sound of the car, she quickly rushed downstairs but paused on top of the stairs when Ezrah walked through the door of the living room. Arriving home, Ezrah no longer met the woman who always met him with a smile. She stood on top of the stairs and yelled with a cold expression, โGood news Ezrah! Our baby died in a car accident. There is nothing between us, so letโs get a divorce.โ The man who was always cold to her instantly panicked. He stood momentarily frozen. Chapter 3 Ezrah was baffled by the news. Twice, he had asked her for a divorce and saw how gloomy she turned at the subject. This was what he wanted but he couldnโt help the unease filling his heart. Was it because Zora was the one asking? Was she trying to mess up his reputation with the loss of the child? Ezrah was confused. Zora descended the stairs, walking to the dining table. Ezrah did not utter an acceptance or rejection of her request for a divorce and went up the stairs, returning after ten minutes in loungewear. Seemed he wasnโt going out or was it the shock from the news? Seeing the dinner table hosting different delicacies, excitement filled his heart as he took a seat. If she really wanted a divorce, then she wouldnโt have cooked for him. At this moment, Piper was momentarily forgotten. Ezrah avoided Zoraโs gaze as this was the first time she was so cold to him. Without alerting her of his arrival, she still ensured that his supper was ready. As he uncovered one of the dishes, his eyes darkened as he glared at her. It was not the food he was expecting but rather, the cold divorce papers, with a pen beside them, waiting to be signed. โWhat is this?โ Ezrah was furious, being famished from not having time to eat. In times past, Zora would have been worried and tried to appease him but that Zora was gone. After crying her eyes out for days, she waited to serve Ezrah these cold documents, she had no more tears to shed but her eyes were dangerously red. โDo I need to get you a pair of glasses?โ Her voice was taunting, as she saw the shocked expression on his face. He must have taken her request as a joke the first time but the documents exposed the reality. โWhy? Were you expecting me to cook when I had no idea when you will be home?โ Ezrahโs expression was blank. She could have made the maids do it. It burned Zora that she could not read his emotions but she didnโt care anymore. โPlease sign the papers. In case the prints are too tiny, I got you a magnifying glass,โ she dropped the item in front of him. Ezrah was not irrational. When he asked for a divorce, he ensured that there would be nothing for the media to feed on but now that they just lost a child? What will people think? His parents liked Zora, except his two elder brothers who always saw her as a threat. The situation was complicated now. Ezrah never thought she would stand on it to ask for a divorce because of how she always claimed to love him, not caring if he was just cold to her. He needed time to think. โWe shall talk about it later,โ he finally said and was about to stand up when Zora played an audio from her phone. With her mind made up, she wanted the divorce here and now. The woman in front of Ezrah was different from the one he always came home to. She always wore attractive clothes with a little makeup to seduce him which sometimes worked but after his release, Ezrah would return to being cold. Today, Zora did not have on any makeup. Her hair was not even combed. All she wore was pajamas, her long dark hair looking lifeless, in contrast to Ezrah who was looking so attractive. He had the looks and physique Zora used to die for but not anymore. All she felt for him now was resentment. She suddenly matured past looks or smartness in a man. What was there in being hot and a genius in business when there is no conscience or empathy? Zora was just seeing that the man she has always been obsessed with was a selfish monster, caring only about his own image, money, and passion. Whatever blinded her eyes before was removed the moment she woke up on that hospital bed. The voice from the audio was as clear as daylight. A female and a male but the male voice was indeed that of Ezrah. Female: Iโm sorry. I thought it was urgent. Male: Nothing about Zora is ever urgent. Female: Ezrah, are you sure you will divorce her? Male: You donโt believe me? Iโm only with her because sheโs carrying my child. As soon as heโs born, I will divorce her. Zora caught an expression of guilt on his face but there was no remorse. His voice was hard. โWhere did you get that?โ He demanded. Piper could not have done this, right? She had no contact with Zora. But it was just the two of them in the room. Were there secret cameras? Though confused, his expression returned to being blank. โYou have to destroy that audio before I sign this paper,โ he threatened her. Zora could not tell how she managed to pretend that she was fine. Up until now, he didnโt even care to apologize for sharing their private information with whatever name he calls the woman in his life. What on earth could have made her fall in love with such a man? He was different from that man from a long time ago who saved her from the pool when she was bullied by some jealous friends. Ezrah did not remember that day but that was when Zora fell in love with him. She calmly showed him another caption on her phone. โMr. Ezra Gannon admits to reigniting his love for his old flame, Miss Piper Henshaw.โ This time, Ezrah paled but his eyes were dark and he picked up his phone instantly. He couldnโt find the person who took those pictures and how they went viral but had to get someone to take them down. The hacker would also be able to find out who sent that information to the press. Zora had grown thorns after listening over and over to the audio and reading that news on her phone. Ezrah had already told her the same thing so this shouldnโt hurt. โIt doesnโt matter. The hindrance has already been removed and you already have a woman waiting for you. Just sign the freaking papers.โ Chapter 4 Ezrah paced back and forth elegantly, his mind filled with confusion and fear after ending the call. โYou want to blackmail me? How much do you want?โ He was enraged and disdained that Zora would resort to such means, but he was willing to pay to prevent the audio from going viral. His parents would not hesitate to demote him despite his hard work in the company, while his lazy elder brothers would benefit without putting in the effort. โWhat I want, you already gave, but since the accident took it away, there is nothing you can give me.โ She did not disclose her suspicions, as she had someone investigating the matter. Ezrah suddenly laughed mockingly. โYour fatherโs company is not as strong as you think. He has been seeking an alliance with me. You want fifty percent of my hard work.โ This could be the reason Zora was pushing for the divorce. Fifty percent from the Gannon Group would elevate her family business to new heights. She felt bitter that he would think so poorly of her. Despite her feelings, she kept her composure. โNo. You were the one who proposed the divorce, so were you planning to leave me with nothing?โ Her question left him speechless, and she reminded him of the prenup agreement. โDid you forget that I signed a prenup before marrying you? I just refreshed your memory so you are free to sign.โ Ezrah recalled that Zora had willingly proposed and prepared the prenup when they announced their marriage after the scandal. She did it all to prove to him that she wasnโt โinterested in his wealth. He suddenly felt uneasy. This was not the scenario he had anticipated when he entered the room. Besides, he was hungry and not in the right state to make such a decision. What if Zora was being supported by one of his brothers or both? โYou may have dismissed it, but it's only a matter of time before you reveal that you left with nothing.โ Zora struggled to suppress the pain that came with realizing that Ezrah's delay in finalizing the divorce was not due to developing feelings for her or guilt, but rather to protect his image in front of the media and family. She felt a bitter smile form on her lips. โTrust me, nothing about our divorce will be leaked to the media.โ โI donโt believe you,โ Ezrah responded bluntly. Zora had worked closely with him, and despite her absence from the office in recent weeks, she was privy to confidential information. Ezrah had never seen her as a threat due to her infatuation with him, but now he feared she might make his life difficult. โAs soon as the papers are signed, you wonโt hear from me again. You can have a happy life with the woman you love,โ Zora proposed. Ezrah was already contemplating how he could benefit from her disappearance after the divorce. It seemed like she wanted to start fresh somewhere far away. โAlright. Iโm not heartless. I will still give you 50 million,โ he said as he signed the document, only to find that Zora had already signed her part. After signing the divorce agreement, Ezrahโs phone rang. Seeing it was Piper, he answered it and began to climb the stairs in long strides. Piper keeps breaking the agreement. She wasnโt supposed to call him when she was home. Zora overheard him on the phone, โAre you the one who recorded our conversation at the hotel?โ She couldnโt hear Piperโs response but had the conviction that it was her. Deciding it was best to spend the night on the sofa, Zora couldn't fathom sharing a room with him after their divorce. She was too exhausted to move to another room. Her sleep was restless, prompting her to wake up before Ezrah. She had already packed her bags, so she dressed and approached him. โEzrah, itโs time to finalize our divorce in court.โ Ezrah woke up and looked at her glumly. She was still in a somber mood, her eyes red despite the makeup. He sighed, โjust a few minutes.โ An hour later, they arrived at the divorce court. With Zora having made prior arrangements, the process was swift, and they soon had their divorce certificates. Without hesitation, they signed their respective portions. โYou should keep your word and leave New York for good, or else you wonโt like what I will do,โ Ezrah warned solemnly. Zora had a faint smile on her face. โI have a gift waiting for you at home.โ Ezrah frowned, wondering what kind of gift she arranged for him after their divorce. Zora has always been generous, buying him gifts and anything she knew he would like. He would neither accept nor refuse them. Whereas, he never used any of the gifts she bought for him. They left together, but Zora departed in a cab against his wishes to drop her at the airport. She reiterated that he would never see her again. Ezrah felt conflicted but remembered his promise to Piper. Despite his desire to head straight to the office for a meeting, curiosity got the best of him. He rescheduled the meeting and drove home to see the gift Zora had left for him. Upon arriving, he found a letter on the dining table addressed to him. โEZRAH.โ He couldn't recall seeing it earlier that morning, and a sense of unease crept over him as he approached and opened the letter. It was written in Zoraโs handwriting, unmistakable to him. As he read the words, fear, panic, and regret flooded his heart. The letter slipped from his trembling fingers as he cried out, โZORA, WHAT HAVE YOU DONE?โ | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13232&u | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | shgjfh.com | VIDEO | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13232&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/456332731_2006494239768840_6830693140551365781_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=110&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=P6YJtV-lNhIQ7kNvgGB_6_Z&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=ABPwkCq691JLqdHhVoqj7W9&oh=00_AYB87MeofFUP6bDtrwFLwdErqsJbNjC5MLFGRKFsLcmzoQ&oe=672FE446 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,567 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312565}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 | ๐Read the next chapters๐ | Chapter 1 โSir, Madam is not feeling well," the butler of the Gannon mansion reported on the phone. The man at the end of the line spoke in a nonchalant tone. "So, take her to the hospital. Iโm not a doctor." The line died immediately. The butler was so pale, beads of sweat formed on his forehead. Zora relaxed her back against the sofa, feeling weak from abdominal pains. Trying to mask the pain, she asked hopefully. โWhat did he say?โ The butler instantly put on a calm smile when he turned in her direction. โMadam, sir said he will meet us at the hospital.โ Zoraโs eyes lit up. Ezrah had not been home for almost three days, and she was missing him so much. This sickness seemed to be her lucky charm to get him to her side again. โOkay. Letโs go.โ Zoraโs heart warmed at the fact that Ezrah at least cared about his child. Both of them were caught in a scandal two years ago, so getting married was the only way to curb the situation. Ezrahโs stance was clear through it all. โWhen everything calms down, we are getting a divorce.โ Zora hoped that by that time, she would have been able to melt his cold heart and make him fully hers, so her hopes were high. However, over time, she found him slowly drawing away from her, even when they worked together in the same company and shared the same bedroom. Two months ago, Ezrah returned and asked Zora for a divorce but chanced upon the test results. His expression was dark. โLetโs hold off on the divorce until after the child is born, but donโt expect to remain Mrs. Gannon. That title belongs to somebody else, but itโs definitely not you.โ The marriage after those words had been terrible. Ezrah barely returned home, barely got intimate with her. The only reason she still bore Mrs. Gannon was because of the child in her womb. Zora thought that his reason for being away was because of work since he was the CEO of the Gannon Group, a multibillion-dollar company where Zora also worked as an assistant manager. Unknown to Ezrah, Zora had been secretly in love with him for five years, but that drunk night at her best friend Cocoโs birthday party, Zora woke up in bed with Ezrah. She decided to keep it a secret and a memory she would forever cherish when the media picked up the news. Ezrah could not allow the scandal to ruin his well-kept reputation and cause him losses, so he announced that he and Zora were already dating secretly and were soon getting married. Zora, who had been madly in love with him, was excited about the news of getting married to Ezrah. Zora hoped that with time, his heart would warm up towards her, but that did not happen. Even in her state, Ezrah hardly spent the night at home. On the way to the hospital, Zoraโs phone beeped, and looking at the content, her heart dropped. Ezrah was holding the delicate hand of a beautiful woman, a proud smile on his face. The caption read, โMr. Ezra Gannon admits to reigniting his love for his old flame, Miss Piper Henshaw.โ Zoraโs eyes were swollen with tears. As they dropped down her cheeks, she refused to believe it. Maybe it was photoshopped. There was never any news about Ezrah dating any woman before she had a baby for him. He never even warmed up to women. The man had long been secretive and kept his face from the media. Also, the butler Rudolph had said that Ezrah promised to meet them at the hospital, so the media must be spreading this false news to gain popularity. Even after everything, she still could not help the unease in her heart, instantly dialing his number. Despite him warning her to only communicate with him through the butler, Zora took the bull by the horn this time. Her call went through, but there was no answer. Her old self would have given up, but due to the unease in her heart because of the news, she couldnโt bring herself to do so. On the fourth ring, a woman answered the call. Her melodious voice made Zora feel less of a woman. โEzrah is in the bathroom.โ Zoraโs hands holding the phone shook, her heart in tatters. Ezrah never allowed her to touch his phone, but this woman casually answered his call, and was he really in the bathroom? Zora felt the pain in her chest worse than that of her abdomen. โWho are you?โ The words forced themselves out of her mouth. The woman responded casually, โPiper, his fiancรฉe. And you are?โ โWhatever he saved my name with,โ Zora responded calmly. The pain of the news was more than she could bear. Though knowing that Ezrah never loved her, she thought they could live in peace for the sake of the baby in her womb, but Ezrah never meant to make her dreams come true. The woman at the end of the line moved the phone from her ear to have a better view of the caller ID. โOh, Zora. If itโs urgent, I could drop a message for you when he comes out.โ The nights Ezrah spent away when Zora thought he was busy at work, it was a great disappointment that he was with the woman he loved, leaving her to suffer with her unborn child. She was still in her first trimester, and due to all the morning sickness and other health issues, Zora had taken a break from working at the company to recover first. Her mind lacked clarity, and she was beginning to doubt all the responses she got from Rudolph when she asked him to get in touch with Ezrah. โJust tell him to call me.โ Zora ended the call. At the hotel room, Ezrah returned from the meeting in the conference room. Since he never allowed anyone to answer their calls during meetings, he equally left his phone in the presidential suite meant for his relaxation. โWhat are you doing with my phone?โ He asked as soon as he entered the bedroom. Before Piper spoke, he asked again, โand I made it clear that you should wait for me at the lounge. How did you have access?โ The pout on Piperโs lips only made her cuter as she faked anger. โIs it wrong for me to come? We would have gotten married if Zora had not appeared.โ Ezrah was a man who loved to keep his love life private. He and Piper had been in a secret long-distance relationship. The night they arranged to meet at the birthday party of one of his business partnerโs sister, Piper had an emergency and could not attend as planned. That night, he mysteriously ended up in bed with Zora, an incident that should have been brushed under the carpet until the media took hold of it. Not wanting his well-maintained reputation to crack, he apologetically married Zora, promising Piper to divorce Zora secretly after two years when the news dies down. Things took a different turn when he found the test result after promising Piper that he was ending things with Zora. โI told you I was working on it. You should keep yourself hidden away from the press. We shouldnโt be seen together.โ Ezrahโs voice was stern. It was business for him first, and he didnโt want Piperโs presence to ruin it for him. Piper was uneasy at the reminder. Forcing a smile, she relayed, โI could be your confidential secretary. Please Ezrah, I donโt want to be away from you anymore.โ Ezrah did not give a response. His actions were always well thought out. It wasnโt easy for him to be the CEO of the legendary Gannon Group as the youngest of three sons. Any wrong move and his elder brothers would begin to fight for the position. โDid anyone call?โ He was scrolling through his phone when he caught sight of Zoraโs name. โYeah. Zora. She said you should call her,โ Piper responded with a smile, her fingers sliding over her exposed thighs as she lay seductively on the luxurious king-size bed. โWhat did you tell her?โ Ezrah frowned a little. He wanted to keep Piper a secret until after the divorce. โI pretended not to know about her existence.โ Piper lifted herself to a sitting position, and due to the long slit of the dress, her full thighs were exposed, but Ezrahโs attention was on the phone in his hand. โDo me a favor and donโt answer my calls again.โ His voice had lost its warmth. Piper faked remorse. โIโm sorry. I thought it was urgent.โ Ezrah finally held her gaze as he spoke roughly, โNothing about Zora is ever urgent.โ Chapter 2 Piper was very happy with his remark, but Zora was still Misses Gannon, the title Piper had long coveted. How she wished that night had not happened. If only that useless man had not appeared when she was about to leave for the airport to board the private jet, she would have been the one waking up in bed with Ezrah. It pained her that it had to be that woman, Zora. โEzrah, are you sure you will divorce her?โ Ezrah hated to be doubted. โYou donโt believe me? Iโm only with her because sheโs carrying my child. As soon as heโs born, I will divorce her.โ Piper smiled with satisfaction, and since she had mentally stored Zora's number after answering the call, she sent the recording to her. Remembering that the butler had called Ezrah informing him that Zora was sick, she asked after deleting the audio from her phone. โCan you go shopping with me? I didnโt bring enough clothes.โ Even if Zora showed the audio to Ezrah, Piper would deny it as she had used a number Ezrah didnโt know to send it. โI have another meeting in two hours, so you have an hour and a half to finish shopping,โ Ezrah said softly. Zoraโs heart tightened in her chest when she played the audio. The butler who was driving the car felt helpless, equally disappointed in his boss. Zora asked from the back seat of the luxurious car she was seated in. โDid he really tell you he was coming to the hospital?โ The butlerโs throat went dry. He always succeeded in making up excuses for his boss, but this time, everything backfired. That audio destroyed everything. โIโm sorry, maโam. I just didnโt want to see you sad.โ Zoraโs heart twitched, a bitter smile curled the corner of her lips, feeling like a fool as tears welled up in her eyes. She was nothing to Ezrah. The little surprises sent to ignite her hope were merely prepared by the butler. No matter how hard she tried, she couldnโt recover from the pain as she felt a force hit the car from the side, causing it to swerve off the road and somersault thrice. The butler was instantly unconscious. Zora felt unbearable pain, blood sputtered from her mouth and nose, then in between her thighs. No words could describe the agony as she watched the life draining out of her with intense pain settled in her abdomen. She managed to pick up her phone, which had fallen to the side from the impact, dialing her husbandโs number. Unable to lift the phone to her ear, she activated the speaker. โZora. Iโm busy.โ That was what Ezrah said as soon as he answered the phone, not waiting to hear what she had to say. After all, nothing about Zora was ever urgent to him. Before she lost consciousness, she heard the laughter of a woman with the words, โEzrah, I want these shoes.โ โTry them on. If they fit, you can have them.โ โSo, shopping with a woman is what you call busy.โ That was what Zora thought before losing consciousness. Zora woke up at the hospital after hours of surgery. Her face was as pale as a ghost, her countenance pitiful. Her butler, Rudolph, sat at her hospital bed, a smile on his face. He had sustained a few injuries, but they were not serious, and he was already discharged. โMadam, you are awake. Thank God.โ Zora was glad to see that Rudolph was fine. There were just bruises on his face. He quickly rushed out to call a doctor. โMrs. Gannon, how are you feeling?โ The doctor asked as he examined Zora, writing a few things on a writing pad he carried along. Zora was only concerned about one thing. โHow is my baby?โ Zora asked. The doctorโs eyes dulled. โIโm very sorry, but your baby couldnโt survive the impact.โ Tears brimmed in the back of Zoraโs eyes, but she fought them back. She lost everything. She left her fatherโs company to work for her husband, nurturing his business and enduring all the taunts of his arrogant family. At twenty-three, she had nothing to show for the man she had secretly loved for five good years. โItโs alright. She would have just suffered anyway.โ Her heart had turned cold due to the loss of the child. โExcuse me?โ The doctor was shocked. He expected her to cry like any woman in her situation would, but Zora bottled it in. She could endure all of Ezrahโs indifference towards her, but she would never forgive him for the loss of her child. That woman appeared, and Zora suddenly got involved in an accident. The case had to be investigated, but as for Ezrah, he no longer had a place in her heart. โSorry, that was not directed at you.โ There was no warmth in Zoraโs apologetic voice. The doctor forced a smile, finished his examination, and left. Zora stared at the butler at the doorway. He stood there since the doctor arrived. Zora was about to tear down but couldnโt do so. She had been weak for too long, leading to the death of her child. If she had left the first time Ezrah asked her for a divorce, this would not have happened. When she discovered this baby, she decided to consent to the divorce and leave. At least, she would have his child to remind her of the relationship they once shared. Unfortunately, the test result fell from her handbag, Ezrah saw it. Even when he decided for them to wait until after she gave birth, his treatment of her was no better. โWhere is Ezrah?โ Zora asked. Butler Rudolph was scared. He could feel the cold in Zoraโs voice, and even with the distance, he could feel the chills. โMadam, the man who hit us was drunk, and he died on the spot. The police are not able to contact his family either,โ Rudolph reported, trying to avoid answering her question. He was a middle-aged man. Zora did not believe the report but kept it to herself. The moment she discovered that the man she respected so much was lying to her, her trust in him dwindled. She will find ways to investigate the matter by herself. โThat isnโt my question.โ โBoss left here a few minutes ago,โ Rudolph answered. Zora was enraged this time. Not only Ezrah but Rudolph, the butler Ezrah assigned to her, was equally taking her for a fool. โDonโt lie to my face again.โ Her voice was stern and full of contempt. Rudolph pursed his lips, his head lowered. โBoss said, and I quote. โItโs rather unfortunate. Let the doctors take care of her. Iโm very busy at the moment.โ Zora knew what he was busy with. It was the woman whose voice she heard in the audio. She thought she was strong enough to take it, but a tear fell from her eyes before she could stop it. Ashamed of showing her weak side in front of Rudolph, she discharged him. โThank you, and please excuse me.โ Rudolph was never supposed to leave Zora's side, so he was reluctant. โMaโฆโ โI said, excuse me, Rudolph,โ Zoraโs voice raised, Rudolph decided to wait in front of the door. โOkay.โ As soon as he left the ward, Zora dialed a number. โSophโฆโ โDad, Iโm sorry. I made a mistake, and now, I lost everything.โ Zora didnโt hold back her tears as she spoke to her father on the phone. He was against the marriage the moment he realized that Ezrah did not feel the same way Zora felt about him, but she was optimistic, insisting that Ezrah would change. Expecting her father to scold her an, โI told you soโ lecture, his voice was rather soft as he asked her. โWhat happened, Zora?โ โI had an accident and lost the baby. Iโm coming home.โ The silence at the end of the line was deafening. She knew her father was saddened about the loss of his grandchild. When she was about to end the call, he suddenly said, โOh Zora. Iโm coming to get you. Just send me your location.โ Zora refused. She couldnโt leave until she was legally separated from Ezrah. โNo dad, I have a few things to do first.โ โWhat is that? Let me help you with it?โ Her father eagerly said, but she was in no mood to burden the middle-aged man. The loss had caused Zora to mature so fast as the reality of life hit her. No more would she depend on anyone. It was time to do something worthwhile with her life, but first of all, she will still have to face Ezrah for the last time. โDonโt worry. Itโs nothing I canโt handle. โOkay. We shall prepare your welcome party. I will inform your mom.โ Zora smiled and didnโt refuse her fatherโs kindness. Three days later, she was discharged from the hospital. As she waited for Ezrahโs return, she got the divorce papers ready. It was three days later in the dead of the night when Ezrah returned, tired-looking but his attractive features remained untouched by his fatigue. Zora had lost sleep, waiting for Ezrah during most of the days. As soon as she heard the sound of the car, she quickly rushed downstairs but paused on top of the stairs when Ezrah walked through the door of the living room. Arriving home, Ezrah no longer met the woman who always met him with a smile. She stood on top of the stairs and yelled with a cold expression, โGood news Ezrah! Our baby died in a car accident. There is nothing between us, so letโs get a divorce.โ The man who was always cold to her instantly panicked. He stood momentarily frozen. Chapter 3 Ezrah was baffled by the news. Twice, he had asked her for a divorce and saw how gloomy she turned at the subject. This was what he wanted but he couldnโt help the unease filling his heart. Was it because Zora was the one asking? Was she trying to mess up his reputation with the loss of the child? Ezrah was confused. Zora descended the stairs, walking to the dining table. Ezrah did not utter an acceptance or rejection of her request for a divorce and went up the stairs, returning after ten minutes in loungewear. Seemed he wasnโt going out or was it the shock from the news? Seeing the dinner table hosting different delicacies, excitement filled his heart as he took a seat. If she really wanted a divorce, then she wouldnโt have cooked for him. At this moment, Piper was momentarily forgotten. Ezrah avoided Zoraโs gaze as this was the first time she was so cold to him. Without alerting her of his arrival, she still ensured that his supper was ready. As he uncovered one of the dishes, his eyes darkened as he glared at her. It was not the food he was expecting but rather, the cold divorce papers, with a pen beside them, waiting to be signed. โWhat is this?โ Ezrah was furious, being famished from not having time to eat. In times past, Zora would have been worried and tried to appease him but that Zora was gone. After crying her eyes out for days, she waited to serve Ezrah these cold documents, she had no more tears to shed but her eyes were dangerously red. โDo I need to get you a pair of glasses?โ Her voice was taunting, as she saw the shocked expression on his face. He must have taken her request as a joke the first time but the documents exposed the reality. โWhy? Were you expecting me to cook when I had no idea when you will be home?โ Ezrahโs expression was blank. She could have made the maids do it. It burned Zora that she could not read his emotions but she didnโt care anymore. โPlease sign the papers. In case the prints are too tiny, I got you a magnifying glass,โ she dropped the item in front of him. Ezrah was not irrational. When he asked for a divorce, he ensured that there would be nothing for the media to feed on but now that they just lost a child? What will people think? His parents liked Zora, except his two elder brothers who always saw her as a threat. The situation was complicated now. Ezrah never thought she would stand on it to ask for a divorce because of how she always claimed to love him, not caring if he was just cold to her. He needed time to think. โWe shall talk about it later,โ he finally said and was about to stand up when Zora played an audio from her phone. With her mind made up, she wanted the divorce here and now. The woman in front of Ezrah was different from the one he always came home to. She always wore attractive clothes with a little makeup to seduce him which sometimes worked but after his release, Ezrah would return to being cold. Today, Zora did not have on any makeup. Her hair was not even combed. All she wore was pajamas, her long dark hair looking lifeless, in contrast to Ezrah who was looking so attractive. He had the looks and physique Zora used to die for but not anymore. All she felt for him now was resentment. She suddenly matured past looks or smartness in a man. What was there in being hot and a genius in business when there is no conscience or empathy? Zora was just seeing that the man she has always been obsessed with was a selfish monster, caring only about his own image, money, and passion. Whatever blinded her eyes before was removed the moment she woke up on that hospital bed. The voice from the audio was as clear as daylight. A female and a male but the male voice was indeed that of Ezrah. Female: Iโm sorry. I thought it was urgent. Male: Nothing about Zora is ever urgent. Female: Ezrah, are you sure you will divorce her? Male: You donโt believe me? Iโm only with her because sheโs carrying my child. As soon as heโs born, I will divorce her. Zora caught an expression of guilt on his face but there was no remorse. His voice was hard. โWhere did you get that?โ He demanded. Piper could not have done this, right? She had no contact with Zora. But it was just the two of them in the room. Were there secret cameras? Though confused, his expression returned to being blank. โYou have to destroy that audio before I sign this paper,โ he threatened her. Zora could not tell how she managed to pretend that she was fine. Up until now, he didnโt even care to apologize for sharing their private information with whatever name he calls the woman in his life. What on earth could have made her fall in love with such a man? He was different from that man from a long time ago who saved her from the pool when she was bullied by some jealous friends. Ezrah did not remember that day but that was when Zora fell in love with him. She calmly showed him another caption on her phone. โMr. Ezra Gannon admits to reigniting his love for his old flame, Miss Piper Henshaw.โ This time, Ezrah paled but his eyes were dark and he picked up his phone instantly. He couldnโt find the person who took those pictures and how they went viral but had to get someone to take them down. The hacker would also be able to find out who sent that information to the press. Zora had grown thorns after listening over and over to the audio and reading that news on her phone. Ezrah had already told her the same thing so this shouldnโt hurt. โIt doesnโt matter. The hindrance has already been removed and you already have a woman waiting for you. Just sign the freaking papers.โ Chapter 4 Ezrah paced back and forth elegantly, his mind filled with confusion and fear after ending the call. โYou want to blackmail me? How much do you want?โ He was enraged and disdained that Zora would resort to such means, but he was willing to pay to prevent the audio from going viral. His parents would not hesitate to demote him despite his hard work in the company, while his lazy elder brothers would benefit without putting in the effort. โWhat I want, you already gave, but since the accident took it away, there is nothing you can give me.โ She did not disclose her suspicions, as she had someone investigating the matter. Ezrah suddenly laughed mockingly. โYour fatherโs company is not as strong as you think. He has been seeking an alliance with me. You want fifty percent of my hard work.โ This could be the reason Zora was pushing for the divorce. Fifty percent from the Gannon Group would elevate her family business to new heights. She felt bitter that he would think so poorly of her. Despite her feelings, she kept her composure. โNo. You were the one who proposed the divorce, so were you planning to leave me with nothing?โ Her question left him speechless, and she reminded him of the prenup agreement. โDid you forget that I signed a prenup before marrying you? I just refreshed your memory so you are free to sign.โ Ezrah recalled that Zora had willingly proposed and prepared the prenup when they announced their marriage after the scandal. She did it all to prove to him that she wasnโt โinterested in his wealth. He suddenly felt uneasy. This was not the scenario he had anticipated when he entered the room. Besides, he was hungry and not in the right state to make such a decision. What if Zora was being supported by one of his brothers or both? โYou may have dismissed it, but it's only a matter of time before you reveal that you left with nothing.โ Zora struggled to suppress the pain that came with realizing that Ezrah's delay in finalizing the divorce was not due to developing feelings for her or guilt, but rather to protect his image in front of the media and family. She felt a bitter smile form on her lips. โTrust me, nothing about our divorce will be leaked to the media.โ โI donโt believe you,โ Ezrah responded bluntly. Zora had worked closely with him, and despite her absence from the office in recent weeks, she was privy to confidential information. Ezrah had never seen her as a threat due to her infatuation with him, but now he feared she might make his life difficult. โAs soon as the papers are signed, you wonโt hear from me again. You can have a happy life with the woman you love,โ Zora proposed. Ezrah was already contemplating how he could benefit from her disappearance after the divorce. It seemed like she wanted to start fresh somewhere far away. โAlright. Iโm not heartless. I will still give you 50 million,โ he said as he signed the document, only to find that Zora had already signed her part. After signing the divorce agreement, Ezrahโs phone rang. Seeing it was Piper, he answered it and began to climb the stairs in long strides. Piper keeps breaking the agreement. She wasnโt supposed to call him when she was home. Zora overheard him on the phone, โAre you the one who recorded our conversation at the hotel?โ She couldnโt hear Piperโs response but had the conviction that it was her. Deciding it was best to spend the night on the sofa, Zora couldn't fathom sharing a room with him after their divorce. She was too exhausted to move to another room. Her sleep was restless, prompting her to wake up before Ezrah. She had already packed her bags, so she dressed and approached him. โEzrah, itโs time to finalize our divorce in court.โ Ezrah woke up and looked at her glumly. She was still in a somber mood, her eyes red despite the makeup. He sighed, โjust a few minutes.โ An hour later, they arrived at the divorce court. With Zora having made prior arrangements, the process was swift, and they soon had their divorce certificates. Without hesitation, they signed their respective portions. โYou should keep your word and leave New York for good, or else you wonโt like what I will do,โ Ezrah warned solemnly. Zora had a faint smile on her face. โI have a gift waiting for you at home.โ Ezrah frowned, wondering what kind of gift she arranged for him after their divorce. Zora has always been generous, buying him gifts and anything she knew he would like. He would neither accept nor refuse them. Whereas, he never used any of the gifts she bought for him. They left together, but Zora departed in a cab against his wishes to drop her at the airport. She reiterated that he would never see her again. Ezrah felt conflicted but remembered his promise to Piper. Despite his desire to head straight to the office for a meeting, curiosity got the best of him. He rescheduled the meeting and drove home to see the gift Zora had left for him. Upon arriving, he found a letter on the dining table addressed to him. โEZRAH.โ He couldn't recall seeing it earlier that morning, and a sense of unease crept over him as he approached and opened the letter. It was written in Zoraโs handwriting, unmistakable to him. As he read the words, fear, panic, and regret flooded his heart. The letter slipped from his trembling fingers as he cried out, โZORA, WHAT HAVE YOU DONE?โ | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13232&u | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | shgjfh.com | VIDEO | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13232&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/456336569_2864118350403845_9177770996369127584_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=tMK3C0aIRqUQ7kNvgEqPJp1&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=ABPwkCq691JLqdHhVoqj7W9&oh=00_AYBm02sxSrjnVtTMMAQQlC8_aubkqn3SdLdPOhPMY8qehg&oe=672FFD11 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,564 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312659}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 |
|
๐Attention! Do not read in public๏ผ๐ | My mother blamed me for my sister's death and hit me unconscious to the ground, but when I finally woke up, only to find myself being taken to my sister's death memorial while her once boyfriend, now my fated mate, mind-linking me about his sleeping with another woman last night... Lily POV "What makes you think that you have the right to eat this morning? On the anniversary of your sisterโs death?" I thought I was alone when I snuck into the packhouse to grab something to eat before Stephanie's memorial began. But there was my mother standing in the door with a look that could kill. "Do you have any idea what Stephanie is eating right now? NOTHING. She is eating NOTHING because SHE IS DEAD. Because of you!" With that, my mother slapped me hard across the face. I stumbled back, trying to avoid falling. My face hurt like burning. Still I refused to make a sound. I held the tears back and bit my cheek harder causing more blood to fill my mouth. You may ask why I don't fight back. I won't. Mom loved me once, before Stephanie died. She became this monster only because she thought I got her favorite daughter killed, which was so not the truth. It was a rumor spread by Stephanie's boyfriend Alpha James. The night Stephanie died, she told James I asked her to go pick me up in the unfended woods where she later was torn apart by the Rogues. Because I was meeting a boy there. A complete lie. I never had luck with boys. I was always ignored in school. Yet the lie haunted my entire teenage years, even till today. "And do you know what James is going to announce today?" my mother continued angrily. "he is TAKING A CHOSEN MATE! It should be your sister Stephanie to be our future Luna! Not those easy girls he used as distraction!โ Chosen Mate๏ผ But he was my fated mate. Yeah, my sister's boyfriend and I, the Moon Goddess must be playing with us. That night by the waterfall, James held me into his arms and kissed me in the most amorous way. But when he realized it was me instead of my sister, his eyes turned from gentle to angry. "How can it be you? You were ... ugly๏ผWhere is your glasses? And, what happened to your freckles?" "I am no longer 14, James, I've grown up." James simply went mad. He only wanted to see me punished, as the revenge for his girlfriend's death. "Mark my words, Little mate, betrayal pains can kill a wolf." He snarled at me. Maybe this is his way? But before I could figure this all out, another slap sent me down the stairs. I fell unconscious. James POV I see Lily being taken to the arena all wrapped like a body bag. I walk close and pull the blanket. She is covered in scars and bruises. What happened to her? I looked up, finding Lily's mother avoiding to see Lily as if she were hiding something. "What happened?" I asked Lily's brother who brought her here under my command. "Mom said Lily fell down the stairs by accident." Nick said. But that doesn't explain those deep and bleeding wounds. Her eyes closed, her body shivering, her hair a mess. For a second, I think if I made a mistake by insisting she be brought here. No, don't feel sorry for her. She needs to pay for what she did. โPlease bring Lily to her seat in the front next to Sheila.โ I say to Nick. My father puts his hand on my shoulder. โSon, I do not think that is a good idea. It looks to me like Lily needs medical attention. You wanted Lily here, and she is, but why donโt we just keep her on the side or in the back until the event is done?โ โNO! She will sit in the front next to Sheila, like planned.โ โSonโฆ.โ โNo, father. Lily and Sheila must sit together.โ Just as I say Sheila's name, I hear Lilyโs heart beginning to race. I smirk. She heard me. โLittle Mate, does it bother you that you have to sit next to Sheila today?โ I ask Lily via mind-link. Her increased heart-beat tells me that she is very much awake. โI invited Sheila to sit next to you when she left my bedroom this morning. You know, she stayed the night in my bedroom last night, which she often does these days." I see a tear slip from Lily's closed eyes, which confirms that I am right. She can definitely hear me. "Get ready, Little Mate. Sitting next to Sheila is only one part of the fun that I have planned for you this morning.โ I end the mind-link. โBring Lily to her seat,โ I say again to Nick. โIt is show-time.โ | LEARN_MORE | https://getokn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=10745&u | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn More | 0 | getokn.com | DCO | https://getokn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=10745&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/456055937_963242915600245_680381809046226054_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=TDjxGQ2s4q0Q7kNvgF6ATgD&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=ABPwkCq691JLqdHhVoqj7W9&oh=00_AYBFSLM7grNyB1bD_jvlxfHFl5suDzo1CvNRSyVkOdkWJg&oe=672FDB6D | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | ||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,571 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312542}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 | ๐Read the next chapters๐ | I hear the rumors being spread about me by his relatives; the whisper that Iโm barren. I look down at the little pink plus sign on the test and I smile. Itโs all going to change now. On the anniversary night, I caught my husband cheating on me with my best friend in our bed. โHe never loved you, Iโm always his true love. He met me first. โ my best friend says, โHe's only with you because he wants an heir, a baby. โ โDid you ever love me?โ I ask. "Love is too strong of a word.โ He laughs out loud as if he has heard something ridiculous. โYou have good breeding, your parents assured me you would be an obedient wife, and all along you've done well. Why don't you keep it up? Accept the reality and move on, before I run out of patience." His tone reminds me of the new racehorse he bought last month. A new, premium racehorse, presentable, brings him victories and can be bred to produce foals again. He never sees me as a wife, or even as a person. โI want a divorce,โ I say with a broken heart. โRemember your prenup? If you don't give me an heir, you will be ruined. Your family will be in debt for the rest of their lives. Think twice, Hazel. โ His pupils dilate like that of a wild animalโs. I dug out my prenup from when Dad told me not to worry about anything, that they would protect me and all I had to do was sign it, and so I did. But now, I realize that my parents sold me into marriage. They didnโt care about me, at all. โGet over yourself and fulfil your duty to me. I'm the only one who can stand you in bed, you know how boring you used to be in bed?โ He stares at me with those cold eyes. The eyes I once loved. Heโs finally stopped pretending. "I donโt know why you are fighting this so hard. We had a good time, didn't we? We can still live the life we had before. Itโs not like you donโt enjoy the things we do together,โ he boasts. I wonโt let him gaslight me anymore. โDonโt flatter yourselfโฆโ I whisper between my gritted teeth. โIโm leaving you, one way or anotherโฆ.โ The look on his face is absolutely worth it. I may have to pay the consequences later. But for now, I feel free for the first time in my life. I will leave Carter, no matter the cost. | LEARN_MORE | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&u | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | redtgb.com | VIDEO | https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/453536613_1216827343090612_5759384541470391626_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=_EZdEdkLo2UQ7kNvgE0zpAr&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AvaKHVXzINA6EwbBpYs3LpN&oh=00_AYBjgjC1bOwg4odbXCNgb2B9kjF1_Rnc2cO79TsCsLrN4w&oe=672FF863 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete | |||||||||||||||||||||||||||||||
2,312,573 |
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2312565}' |
Yes | 2024-11-05 07:45 | active | 1703 | 0 | ๐Read the next chapters๐ | Chapter 1 โSir, Madam is not feeling well," the butler of the Gannon mansion reported on the phone. The man at the end of the line spoke in a nonchalant tone. "So, take her to the hospital. Iโm not a doctor." The line died immediately. The butler was so pale, beads of sweat formed on his forehead. Zora relaxed her back against the sofa, feeling weak from abdominal pains. Trying to mask the pain, she asked hopefully. โWhat did he say?โ The butler instantly put on a calm smile when he turned in her direction. โMadam, sir said he will meet us at the hospital.โ Zoraโs eyes lit up. Ezrah had not been home for almost three days, and she was missing him so much. This sickness seemed to be her lucky charm to get him to her side again. โOkay. Letโs go.โ Zoraโs heart warmed at the fact that Ezrah at least cared about his child. Both of them were caught in a scandal two years ago, so getting married was the only way to curb the situation. Ezrahโs stance was clear through it all. โWhen everything calms down, we are getting a divorce.โ Zora hoped that by that time, she would have been able to melt his cold heart and make him fully hers, so her hopes were high. However, over time, she found him slowly drawing away from her, even when they worked together in the same company and shared the same bedroom. Two months ago, Ezrah returned and asked Zora for a divorce but chanced upon the test results. His expression was dark. โLetโs hold off on the divorce until after the child is born, but donโt expect to remain Mrs. Gannon. That title belongs to somebody else, but itโs definitely not you.โ The marriage after those words had been terrible. Ezrah barely returned home, barely got intimate with her. The only reason she still bore Mrs. Gannon was because of the child in her womb. Zora thought that his reason for being away was because of work since he was the CEO of the Gannon Group, a multibillion-dollar company where Zora also worked as an assistant manager. Unknown to Ezrah, Zora had been secretly in love with him for five years, but that drunk night at her best friend Cocoโs birthday party, Zora woke up in bed with Ezrah. She decided to keep it a secret and a memory she would forever cherish when the media picked up the news. Ezrah could not allow the scandal to ruin his well-kept reputation and cause him losses, so he announced that he and Zora were already dating secretly and were soon getting married. Zora, who had been madly in love with him, was excited about the news of getting married to Ezrah. Zora hoped that with time, his heart would warm up towards her, but that did not happen. Even in her state, Ezrah hardly spent the night at home. On the way to the hospital, Zoraโs phone beeped, and looking at the content, her heart dropped. Ezrah was holding the delicate hand of a beautiful woman, a proud smile on his face. The caption read, โMr. Ezra Gannon admits to reigniting his love for his old flame, Miss Piper Henshaw.โ Zoraโs eyes were swollen with tears. As they dropped down her cheeks, she refused to believe it. Maybe it was photoshopped. There was never any news about Ezrah dating any woman before she had a baby for him. He never even warmed up to women. The man had long been secretive and kept his face from the media. Also, the butler Rudolph had said that Ezrah promised to meet them at the hospital, so the media must be spreading this false news to gain popularity. Even after everything, she still could not help the unease in her heart, instantly dialing his number. Despite him warning her to only communicate with him through the butler, Zora took the bull by the horn this time. Her call went through, but there was no answer. Her old self would have given up, but due to the unease in her heart because of the news, she couldnโt bring herself to do so. On the fourth ring, a woman answered the call. Her melodious voice made Zora feel less of a woman. โEzrah is in the bathroom.โ Zoraโs hands holding the phone shook, her heart in tatters. Ezrah never allowed her to touch his phone, but this woman casually answered his call, and was he really in the bathroom? Zora felt the pain in her chest worse than that of her abdomen. โWho are you?โ The words forced themselves out of her mouth. The woman responded casually, โPiper, his fiancรฉe. And you are?โ โWhatever he saved my name with,โ Zora responded calmly. The pain of the news was more than she could bear. Though knowing that Ezrah never loved her, she thought they could live in peace for the sake of the baby in her womb, but Ezrah never meant to make her dreams come true. The woman at the end of the line moved the phone from her ear to have a better view of the caller ID. โOh, Zora. If itโs urgent, I could drop a message for you when he comes out.โ The nights Ezrah spent away when Zora thought he was busy at work, it was a great disappointment that he was with the woman he loved, leaving her to suffer with her unborn child. She was still in her first trimester, and due to all the morning sickness and other health issues, Zora had taken a break from working at the company to recover first. Her mind lacked clarity, and she was beginning to doubt all the responses she got from Rudolph when she asked him to get in touch with Ezrah. โJust tell him to call me.โ Zora ended the call. At the hotel room, Ezrah returned from the meeting in the conference room. Since he never allowed anyone to answer their calls during meetings, he equally left his phone in the presidential suite meant for his relaxation. โWhat are you doing with my phone?โ He asked as soon as he entered the bedroom. Before Piper spoke, he asked again, โand I made it clear that you should wait for me at the lounge. How did you have access?โ The pout on Piperโs lips only made her cuter as she faked anger. โIs it wrong for me to come? We would have gotten married if Zora had not appeared.โ Ezrah was a man who loved to keep his love life private. He and Piper had been in a secret long-distance relationship. The night they arranged to meet at the birthday party of one of his business partnerโs sister, Piper had an emergency and could not attend as planned. That night, he mysteriously ended up in bed with Zora, an incident that should have been brushed under the carpet until the media took hold of it. Not wanting his well-maintained reputation to crack, he apologetically married Zora, promising Piper to divorce Zora secretly after two years when the news dies down. Things took a different turn when he found the test result after promising Piper that he was ending things with Zora. โI told you I was working on it. You should keep yourself hidden away from the press. We shouldnโt be seen together.โ Ezrahโs voice was stern. It was business for him first, and he didnโt want Piperโs presence to ruin it for him. Piper was uneasy at the reminder. Forcing a smile, she relayed, โI could be your confidential secretary. Please Ezrah, I donโt want to be away from you anymore.โ Ezrah did not give a response. His actions were always well thought out. It wasnโt easy for him to be the CEO of the legendary Gannon Group as the youngest of three sons. Any wrong move and his elder brothers would begin to fight for the position. โDid anyone call?โ He was scrolling through his phone when he caught sight of Zoraโs name. โYeah. Zora. She said you should call her,โ Piper responded with a smile, her fingers sliding over her exposed thighs as she lay seductively on the luxurious king-size bed. โWhat did you tell her?โ Ezrah frowned a little. He wanted to keep Piper a secret until after the divorce. โI pretended not to know about her existence.โ Piper lifted herself to a sitting position, and due to the long slit of the dress, her full thighs were exposed, but Ezrahโs attention was on the phone in his hand. โDo me a favor and donโt answer my calls again.โ His voice had lost its warmth. Piper faked remorse. โIโm sorry. I thought it was urgent.โ Ezrah finally held her gaze as he spoke roughly, โNothing about Zora is ever urgent.โ Chapter 2 Piper was very happy with his remark, but Zora was still Misses Gannon, the title Piper had long coveted. How she wished that night had not happened. If only that useless man had not appeared when she was about to leave for the airport to board the private jet, she would have been the one waking up in bed with Ezrah. It pained her that it had to be that woman, Zora. โEzrah, are you sure you will divorce her?โ Ezrah hated to be doubted. โYou donโt believe me? Iโm only with her because sheโs carrying my child. As soon as heโs born, I will divorce her.โ Piper smiled with satisfaction, and since she had mentally stored Zora's number after answering the call, she sent the recording to her. Remembering that the butler had called Ezrah informing him that Zora was sick, she asked after deleting the audio from her phone. โCan you go shopping with me? I didnโt bring enough clothes.โ Even if Zora showed the audio to Ezrah, Piper would deny it as she had used a number Ezrah didnโt know to send it. โI have another meeting in two hours, so you have an hour and a half to finish shopping,โ Ezrah said softly. Zoraโs heart tightened in her chest when she played the audio. The butler who was driving the car felt helpless, equally disappointed in his boss. Zora asked from the back seat of the luxurious car she was seated in. โDid he really tell you he was coming to the hospital?โ The butlerโs throat went dry. He always succeeded in making up excuses for his boss, but this time, everything backfired. That audio destroyed everything. โIโm sorry, maโam. I just didnโt want to see you sad.โ Zoraโs heart twitched, a bitter smile curled the corner of her lips, feeling like a fool as tears welled up in her eyes. She was nothing to Ezrah. The little surprises sent to ignite her hope were merely prepared by the butler. No matter how hard she tried, she couldnโt recover from the pain as she felt a force hit the car from the side, causing it to swerve off the road and somersault thrice. The butler was instantly unconscious. Zora felt unbearable pain, blood sputtered from her mouth and nose, then in between her thighs. No words could describe the agony as she watched the life draining out of her with intense pain settled in her abdomen. She managed to pick up her phone, which had fallen to the side from the impact, dialing her husbandโs number. Unable to lift the phone to her ear, she activated the speaker. โZora. Iโm busy.โ That was what Ezrah said as soon as he answered the phone, not waiting to hear what she had to say. After all, nothing about Zora was ever urgent to him. Before she lost consciousness, she heard the laughter of a woman with the words, โEzrah, I want these shoes.โ โTry them on. If they fit, you can have them.โ โSo, shopping with a woman is what you call busy.โ That was what Zora thought before losing consciousness. Zora woke up at the hospital after hours of surgery. Her face was as pale as a ghost, her countenance pitiful. Her butler, Rudolph, sat at her hospital bed, a smile on his face. He had sustained a few injuries, but they were not serious, and he was already discharged. โMadam, you are awake. Thank God.โ Zora was glad to see that Rudolph was fine. There were just bruises on his face. He quickly rushed out to call a doctor. โMrs. Gannon, how are you feeling?โ The doctor asked as he examined Zora, writing a few things on a writing pad he carried along. Zora was only concerned about one thing. โHow is my baby?โ Zora asked. The doctorโs eyes dulled. โIโm very sorry, but your baby couldnโt survive the impact.โ Tears brimmed in the back of Zoraโs eyes, but she fought them back. She lost everything. She left her fatherโs company to work for her husband, nurturing his business and enduring all the taunts of his arrogant family. At twenty-three, she had nothing to show for the man she had secretly loved for five good years. โItโs alright. She would have just suffered anyway.โ Her heart had turned cold due to the loss of the child. โExcuse me?โ The doctor was shocked. He expected her to cry like any woman in her situation would, but Zora bottled it in. She could endure all of Ezrahโs indifference towards her, but she would never forgive him for the loss of her child. That woman appeared, and Zora suddenly got involved in an accident. The case had to be investigated, but as for Ezrah, he no longer had a place in her heart. โSorry, that was not directed at you.โ There was no warmth in Zoraโs apologetic voice. The doctor forced a smile, finished his examination, and left. Zora stared at the butler at the doorway. He stood there since the doctor arrived. Zora was about to tear down but couldnโt do so. She had been weak for too long, leading to the death of her child. If she had left the first time Ezrah asked her for a divorce, this would not have happened. When she discovered this baby, she decided to consent to the divorce and leave. At least, she would have his child to remind her of the relationship they once shared. Unfortunately, the test result fell from her handbag, Ezrah saw it. Even when he decided for them to wait until after she gave birth, his treatment of her was no better. โWhere is Ezrah?โ Zora asked. Butler Rudolph was scared. He could feel the cold in Zoraโs voice, and even with the distance, he could feel the chills. โMadam, the man who hit us was drunk, and he died on the spot. The police are not able to contact his family either,โ Rudolph reported, trying to avoid answering her question. He was a middle-aged man. Zora did not believe the report but kept it to herself. The moment she discovered that the man she respected so much was lying to her, her trust in him dwindled. She will find ways to investigate the matter by herself. โThat isnโt my question.โ โBoss left here a few minutes ago,โ Rudolph answered. Zora was enraged this time. Not only Ezrah but Rudolph, the butler Ezrah assigned to her, was equally taking her for a fool. โDonโt lie to my face again.โ Her voice was stern and full of contempt. Rudolph pursed his lips, his head lowered. โBoss said, and I quote. โItโs rather unfortunate. Let the doctors take care of her. Iโm very busy at the moment.โ Zora knew what he was busy with. It was the woman whose voice she heard in the audio. She thought she was strong enough to take it, but a tear fell from her eyes before she could stop it. Ashamed of showing her weak side in front of Rudolph, she discharged him. โThank you, and please excuse me.โ Rudolph was never supposed to leave Zora's side, so he was reluctant. โMaโฆโ โI said, excuse me, Rudolph,โ Zoraโs voice raised, Rudolph decided to wait in front of the door. โOkay.โ As soon as he left the ward, Zora dialed a number. โSophโฆโ โDad, Iโm sorry. I made a mistake, and now, I lost everything.โ Zora didnโt hold back her tears as she spoke to her father on the phone. He was against the marriage the moment he realized that Ezrah did not feel the same way Zora felt about him, but she was optimistic, insisting that Ezrah would change. Expecting her father to scold her an, โI told you soโ lecture, his voice was rather soft as he asked her. โWhat happened, Zora?โ โI had an accident and lost the baby. Iโm coming home.โ The silence at the end of the line was deafening. She knew her father was saddened about the loss of his grandchild. When she was about to end the call, he suddenly said, โOh Zora. Iโm coming to get you. Just send me your location.โ Zora refused. She couldnโt leave until she was legally separated from Ezrah. โNo dad, I have a few things to do first.โ โWhat is that? Let me help you with it?โ Her father eagerly said, but she was in no mood to burden the middle-aged man. The loss had caused Zora to mature so fast as the reality of life hit her. No more would she depend on anyone. It was time to do something worthwhile with her life, but first of all, she will still have to face Ezrah for the last time. โDonโt worry. Itโs nothing I canโt handle. โOkay. We shall prepare your welcome party. I will inform your mom.โ Zora smiled and didnโt refuse her fatherโs kindness. Three days later, she was discharged from the hospital. As she waited for Ezrahโs return, she got the divorce papers ready. It was three days later in the dead of the night when Ezrah returned, tired-looking but his attractive features remained untouched by his fatigue. Zora had lost sleep, waiting for Ezrah during most of the days. As soon as she heard the sound of the car, she quickly rushed downstairs but paused on top of the stairs when Ezrah walked through the door of the living room. Arriving home, Ezrah no longer met the woman who always met him with a smile. She stood on top of the stairs and yelled with a cold expression, โGood news Ezrah! Our baby died in a car accident. There is nothing between us, so letโs get a divorce.โ The man who was always cold to her instantly panicked. He stood momentarily frozen. Chapter 3 Ezrah was baffled by the news. Twice, he had asked her for a divorce and saw how gloomy she turned at the subject. This was what he wanted but he couldnโt help the unease filling his heart. Was it because Zora was the one asking? Was she trying to mess up his reputation with the loss of the child? Ezrah was confused. Zora descended the stairs, walking to the dining table. Ezrah did not utter an acceptance or rejection of her request for a divorce and went up the stairs, returning after ten minutes in loungewear. Seemed he wasnโt going out or was it the shock from the news? Seeing the dinner table hosting different delicacies, excitement filled his heart as he took a seat. If she really wanted a divorce, then she wouldnโt have cooked for him. At this moment, Piper was momentarily forgotten. Ezrah avoided Zoraโs gaze as this was the first time she was so cold to him. Without alerting her of his arrival, she still ensured that his supper was ready. As he uncovered one of the dishes, his eyes darkened as he glared at her. It was not the food he was expecting but rather, the cold divorce papers, with a pen beside them, waiting to be signed. โWhat is this?โ Ezrah was furious, being famished from not having time to eat. In times past, Zora would have been worried and tried to appease him but that Zora was gone. After crying her eyes out for days, she waited to serve Ezrah these cold documents, she had no more tears to shed but her eyes were dangerously red. โDo I need to get you a pair of glasses?โ Her voice was taunting, as she saw the shocked expression on his face. He must have taken her request as a joke the first time but the documents exposed the reality. โWhy? Were you expecting me to cook when I had no idea when you will be home?โ Ezrahโs expression was blank. She could have made the maids do it. It burned Zora that she could not read his emotions but she didnโt care anymore. โPlease sign the papers. In case the prints are too tiny, I got you a magnifying glass,โ she dropped the item in front of him. Ezrah was not irrational. When he asked for a divorce, he ensured that there would be nothing for the media to feed on but now that they just lost a child? What will people think? His parents liked Zora, except his two elder brothers who always saw her as a threat. The situation was complicated now. Ezrah never thought she would stand on it to ask for a divorce because of how she always claimed to love him, not caring if he was just cold to her. He needed time to think. โWe shall talk about it later,โ he finally said and was about to stand up when Zora played an audio from her phone. With her mind made up, she wanted the divorce here and now. The woman in front of Ezrah was different from the one he always came home to. She always wore attractive clothes with a little makeup to seduce him which sometimes worked but after his release, Ezrah would return to being cold. Today, Zora did not have on any makeup. Her hair was not even combed. All she wore was pajamas, her long dark hair looking lifeless, in contrast to Ezrah who was looking so attractive. He had the looks and physique Zora used to die for but not anymore. All she felt for him now was resentment. She suddenly matured past looks or smartness in a man. What was there in being hot and a genius in business when there is no conscience or empathy? Zora was just seeing that the man she has always been obsessed with was a selfish monster, caring only about his own image, money, and passion. Whatever blinded her eyes before was removed the moment she woke up on that hospital bed. The voice from the audio was as clear as daylight. A female and a male but the male voice was indeed that of Ezrah. Female: Iโm sorry. I thought it was urgent. Male: Nothing about Zora is ever urgent. Female: Ezrah, are you sure you will divorce her? Male: You donโt believe me? Iโm only with her because sheโs carrying my child. As soon as heโs born, I will divorce her. Zora caught an expression of guilt on his face but there was no remorse. His voice was hard. โWhere did you get that?โ He demanded. Piper could not have done this, right? She had no contact with Zora. But it was just the two of them in the room. Were there secret cameras? Though confused, his expression returned to being blank. โYou have to destroy that audio before I sign this paper,โ he threatened her. Zora could not tell how she managed to pretend that she was fine. Up until now, he didnโt even care to apologize for sharing their private information with whatever name he calls the woman in his life. What on earth could have made her fall in love with such a man? He was different from that man from a long time ago who saved her from the pool when she was bullied by some jealous friends. Ezrah did not remember that day but that was when Zora fell in love with him. She calmly showed him another caption on her phone. โMr. Ezra Gannon admits to reigniting his love for his old flame, Miss Piper Henshaw.โ This time, Ezrah paled but his eyes were dark and he picked up his phone instantly. He couldnโt find the person who took those pictures and how they went viral but had to get someone to take them down. The hacker would also be able to find out who sent that information to the press. Zora had grown thorns after listening over and over to the audio and reading that news on her phone. Ezrah had already told her the same thing so this shouldnโt hurt. โIt doesnโt matter. The hindrance has already been removed and you already have a woman waiting for you. Just sign the freaking papers.โ Chapter 4 Ezrah paced back and forth elegantly, his mind filled with confusion and fear after ending the call. โYou want to blackmail me? How much do you want?โ He was enraged and disdained that Zora would resort to such means, but he was willing to pay to prevent the audio from going viral. His parents would not hesitate to demote him despite his hard work in the company, while his lazy elder brothers would benefit without putting in the effort. โWhat I want, you already gave, but since the accident took it away, there is nothing you can give me.โ She did not disclose her suspicions, as she had someone investigating the matter. Ezrah suddenly laughed mockingly. โYour fatherโs company is not as strong as you think. He has been seeking an alliance with me. You want fifty percent of my hard work.โ This could be the reason Zora was pushing for the divorce. Fifty percent from the Gannon Group would elevate her family business to new heights. She felt bitter that he would think so poorly of her. Despite her feelings, she kept her composure. โNo. You were the one who proposed the divorce, so were you planning to leave me with nothing?โ Her question left him speechless, and she reminded him of the prenup agreement. โDid you forget that I signed a prenup before marrying you? I just refreshed your memory so you are free to sign.โ Ezrah recalled that Zora had willingly proposed and prepared the prenup when they announced their marriage after the scandal. She did it all to prove to him that she wasnโt โinterested in his wealth. He suddenly felt uneasy. This was not the scenario he had anticipated when he entered the room. Besides, he was hungry and not in the right state to make such a decision. What if Zora was being supported by one of his brothers or both? โYou may have dismissed it, but it's only a matter of time before you reveal that you left with nothing.โ Zora struggled to suppress the pain that came with realizing that Ezrah's delay in finalizing the divorce was not due to developing feelings for her or guilt, but rather to protect his image in front of the media and family. She felt a bitter smile form on her lips. โTrust me, nothing about our divorce will be leaked to the media.โ โI donโt believe you,โ Ezrah responded bluntly. Zora had worked closely with him, and despite her absence from the office in recent weeks, she was privy to confidential information. Ezrah had never seen her as a threat due to her infatuation with him, but now he feared she might make his life difficult. โAs soon as the papers are signed, you wonโt hear from me again. You can have a happy life with the woman you love,โ Zora proposed. Ezrah was already contemplating how he could benefit from her disappearance after the divorce. It seemed like she wanted to start fresh somewhere far away. โAlright. Iโm not heartless. I will still give you 50 million,โ he said as he signed the document, only to find that Zora had already signed her part. After signing the divorce agreement, Ezrahโs phone rang. Seeing it was Piper, he answered it and began to climb the stairs in long strides. Piper keeps breaking the agreement. She wasnโt supposed to call him when she was home. Zora overheard him on the phone, โAre you the one who recorded our conversation at the hotel?โ She couldnโt hear Piperโs response but had the conviction that it was her. Deciding it was best to spend the night on the sofa, Zora couldn't fathom sharing a room with him after their divorce. She was too exhausted to move to another room. Her sleep was restless, prompting her to wake up before Ezrah. She had already packed her bags, so she dressed and approached him. โEzrah, itโs time to finalize our divorce in court.โ Ezrah woke up and looked at her glumly. She was still in a somber mood, her eyes red despite the makeup. He sighed, โjust a few minutes.โ An hour later, they arrived at the divorce court. With Zora having made prior arrangements, the process was swift, and they soon had their divorce certificates. Without hesitation, they signed their respective portions. โYou should keep your word and leave New York for good, or else you wonโt like what I will do,โ Ezrah warned solemnly. Zora had a faint smile on her face. โI have a gift waiting for you at home.โ Ezrah frowned, wondering what kind of gift she arranged for him after their divorce. Zora has always been generous, buying him gifts and anything she knew he would like. He would neither accept nor refuse them. Whereas, he never used any of the gifts she bought for him. They left together, but Zora departed in a cab against his wishes to drop her at the airport. She reiterated that he would never see her again. Ezrah felt conflicted but remembered his promise to Piper. Despite his desire to head straight to the office for a meeting, curiosity got the best of him. He rescheduled the meeting and drove home to see the gift Zora had left for him. Upon arriving, he found a letter on the dining table addressed to him. โEZRAH.โ He couldn't recall seeing it earlier that morning, and a sense of unease crept over him as he approached and opened the letter. It was written in Zoraโs handwriting, unmistakable to him. As he read the words, fear, panic, and regret flooded his heart. The letter slipped from his trembling fingers as he cried out, โZORA, WHAT HAVE YOU DONE?โ | LEARN_MORE | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13232&u | Indulge in story | https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ | 830 | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | 0 | Learn more | 0 | shgjfh.com | VIDEO | https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13232&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} | 1969-12-31 18:00 | https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/454522648_898905085421037_8348523017912664919_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=107&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=8HLY46ijVjoQ7kNvgGECOp8&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AvaKHVXzINA6EwbBpYs3LpN&oh=00_AYA39m_QRz8pKnuj5akN-9_1w3fshjQbQI2sMzCGkY-tkA&oe=672FFBE7 | PERSON_PROFILE | 0 | 0 | 0 | Indulge in story | 0 | 0 | 1969-12-31 18:00 | View Edit Delete |
Page 41 of 82, showing 20 record(s) out of 1,639 total